Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n church_n true_a visible_a 7,129 5 9.3865 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A02483 An ansvvere to a treatise vvritten by Dr. Carier, by way of a letter to his Maiestie vvherein he layeth downe sundry politike considerations; by which hee pretendeth himselfe was moued, and endeuoureth to moue others to be reconciled to the Church of Rome, and imbrace that religion, which he calleth catholike. By George Hakewil, Doctour of Diuinity, and chapleine to the Prince his Highnesse. Hakewill, George, 1578-1649.; Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. Treatise written by Mr. Doctour Carier.; Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. Copy of a letter, written by M. Doctor Carier beyond seas, to some particular friends in England. 1616 (1616) STC 12610; ESTC S103612 283,628 378

There are 47 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

first_o conversion_n to_o christian_a religion_n be_v from_o the_o jew_n or_o grecian_n and_o not_o from_o the_o roman_n so_o that_o if_o rome_n be_v right_o term_v o●r_a mother_n church_n it_o must_v be_v in_o regard_n of_o late_a supply_n from_o eleutherius_fw-la and_o gregory_n not_o of_o our_o first_o conversion_n howsoever_o the_o holy_a city_n be_v now_o become_v a_o harlot_n we_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o reverence_v she_o as_o a_o mother_n but_o as_o a_o strumpet_n till_o she_o repent_v and_o amend_v to_o shun●e_v all_o union_n with_o she_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o give_v they_o their_o due_a praise_n for_o their_o devotion_n and_o zeal_n and_o enter_v at_o last_o into_o the_o rejection_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o unbelief_n he_o warn_v express_o the_o roman_n in_o these_o word_n etc._n boast_v not_o thyself_o against_o the_o branch_n and_o if_o thou_o boast_v thyself_o thou_o bear_v not_o the_o root_n but_o the_o root_n thou_o thou_o will_v say_v the_o branch_n be_v break_v off_o that_o i_o may_v be_v graft_v in_o well_o through_o infidelity_n they_o be_v break_v off_o and_o thou_o stand_v by_o faith_n be_v not_o high_a mind_v but_o fear_v for_o if_o god_n spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n take_v heed_n lest_o he_o spare_v not_o thou_o behold_v therefore_o the_o goodness_n and_o severity_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o which_o have_v fall_v severity_n but_o towards_o thou_o goodness_n if_o thou_o continue_v in_o his_o goodness_n otherwise_o thou_o also_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o now_o whether_o the_o apostle_n speak_v general_o to_o the_o gentile_n and_o inclusive_o to_o the_o roman_n or_o namely_o to_o the_o roman_n and_o proportionable_o to_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o we_o one_o of_o the_o twain_o he_o must_v needs_o origen_n say_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o paul_n i_o say_v to_o you_o gentile_n now_o he_o plain_o turn_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o gentile_n but_o chief_o to_o those_o of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o believe_v s._n paul_n speak_v then_o to_o the_o roman_n no_o man_n may_v except_v the_o roman_n and_o they_o be_v include_v his_o admonition_n to_o they_o if_o there_o can_v be_v no_o danger_n in_o they_o of_o swerve_v from_o the_o faith_n be_v utter_o superfluous_a and_o the_o condition_n imply_v ridiculous_a and_o the_o commination_n odious_a and_o the_o reason_n frivolous_a now_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n there_o threaten_v we_o find_v come_v to_o pass_v so_o that_o we_o can_v we_o dare_v not_o join_v hand_n with_o she_o nay_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o believe_v that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o continue_v out_o of_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o constant_o believe_v that_o the_o mean_n to_o be_v save_v be_v to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o church_n till_o she_o separate_v herself_o from_o her_o error_n special_o since_o in_o your_o understanding_n the_o continue_v in_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o it_o and_o if_o none_o can_v be_v save_v without_o that_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o your_o honest_a brethren_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n who_o you_o profess_v you_o be_v so_o far_o from_o condemn_v as_o you_o do_v account_v yourself_o one_o of_o they_o what_o of_o so_o many_o million_o of_o soul_n in_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a christian_a church_n more_o in_o number_n by_o many_o degree_n than_o those_o that_o yet_o continue_v in_o that_o visible_a unity_n and_o better_a both_o in_o life_n and_o belief_n than_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v it_o or_o the_o visible_a head_n himself_o of_o it_o b._n c._n 20._o there_o be_v another_o statute_n in_o like_a manner_n make_v and_o confirm_v that_o it_o be_v death_n to_o exhort_v the_o people_n of_o england_n to_o catholic_a religion_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o religion_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a religion_n which_o i_o will_v particular_o justify_v from_o point_n to_o point_n if_o god_n give_v time_n and_o opportunity_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o persuade_v the_o people_n thereunto_o g._n h._n 20._o for_o the_o statute_n here_o pretend_v i_o have_v already_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v none_o other_o than_o a_o branch_n of_o the_o former_a and_o for_o your_o promise_n of_o justify_v from_o point_n to_o point_v the_o religion_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v perform_v when_o we_o shall_v see_v it_o publish_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o a_o confutation_n will_v be_v find_v as_o particular_a and_o plain_a and_o more_o true_a than_o your_o justification_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o can_v but_o wonder_v what_o you_o can_v say_v more_o herein_o then_o have_v often_o be_v say_v by_o as_o earnest_n and_o more_o learned_a proctor_n of_o that_o church_n then_o yourself_o beside_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v you_o shall_v be_v sudden_o expert_a and_o so_o peremptory_o confident_a in_o all_o the_o controversed_a point_n except_o you_o be_v resolve_v in_o most_o of_o they_o before_o your_o part_n hence_o i_o remember_v duke_n humphrey_n discover_v a_o notable_a piece_n of_o knavery_n in_o a_o beggar_n who_o pretend_v blindness_n from_o his_o birth_n undertake_v to_o judge_v of_o colour_n instant_o upon_o the_o recovery_n of_o his_o sight_n this_o your_o vain_a offer_n to_o justify_v all_o point_n in_o controversy_n present_o upon_o your_o breathe_n of_o outlandish_a air_n can_v but_o give_v we_o just_a occasion_n to_o suspect_v the_o like_a hyopocrisie_n last_o if_o the_o religion_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o all_o point_v the_o only_a true_a religion_n why_o will_v his_o holiness_n permit_v the_o exercise_n of_o we_o with_o little_a or_o no_o alteration_n as_o afterward_o you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n upon_o condition_n his_o majesty_n on_o the_o other_o side_n will_v admit_v of_o his_o supremacy_n and_o the_o mass_n b._n c._n 21._o it_o may_v be_v these_o be_v not_o all_o several_a statute_n some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o book_n for_o i_o have_v not_o my_o book_n about_o i_o to_o search_v but_o i_o be_o sure_a all_o of_o they_o do_v make_v such_o felony_n and_o treason_n as_o be_v the_o great_a virtue_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o such_o as_o i_o must_v confess_v myself_o i_o can_v choose_v if_o i_o live_v in_o england_n but_o endeavour_n to_o be_v subject_n guilty_a of_o and_o then_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v they_o puritan_n enough_o to_o make_v a_o jury_n against_o i_o and_o there_o will_v not_o want_v a_o itenerant_a justice_n of_o peace_n to_o give_v sentence_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v worse_o than_o the_o persecution_n itself_o they_o will_v all_o swear_v solemn_o that_o d._n carier_n be_v not_o put_v to_o death_n for_o catholic_a religion_n but_o for_o felony_n and_o treason_n i_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o protection_n against_o the_o cruelty_n of_o those_o law_n if_o your_o majesty_n be_v resolve_v upon_o no_o condition_n whatsoever_o to_o have_v society_n at_o all_o nor_o no_o communion_n at_o all_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o while_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v i_o dare_v not_o return_v home_o again_o but_o i_o can_v be_v altogether_o out_o of_o like_a hope_n of_o better_a news_n before_o i_o die_v as_o long_o as_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n do_v rejoice_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n to_o christ_n and_o do_v know_v that_o your_o majesty_n by_o you●_n angel_n birth_n have_v so_o great_a a_o interest_n in_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n as_o you_o shall_v never_o cease_v to_o have_v until_o you_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o such_o a_o mother_n as_o will_v rejoice_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o your_o extraordinary_a conversion_n and_o therefore_o i_o assure_v myself_o that_o she_o with_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v pray_v that_o your_o majesty_n before_o you_o die_v may_v be_v militant_a in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v head_n triumphant_a and_o in_o this_o hope_n i_o be_o go_v before_o to_o join_v my_o prayer_n with_o they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o do_v humble_o pray_v your_o majesty_n grant_v to_o pardon_v i_o for_o do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o avoid_v and_o to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o live_v where_o i_o hope_v short_o to_o die_v unless_o i_o may_v hope_v to_o do_v your_o majesty_n service_n service_n and_o without_o the_o
a_o answer_n to_o a_o treatise_n write_v by_o dr._n carier_n by_o way_n of_o letter_n to_o his_o majesty_n wherein_o he_o lay_v down_o sundry_a politic_a consideration_n by_o which_o he_o pretend_v himself_o be_v move_v and_o endeavour_v to_o move_v other_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o embrace_v that_o religion_n which_o he_o call_v catholic_a by_o george_n hakewil_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o chaplain_n to_o the_o prince_n his_o highness_n b._n c._n translation_n my_o heart_n will_v utter_v forth_o a_o good_a matter_n i_o will_v entreat_v in_o my_o work_n of_o the_o king_n g._n h._n give_v thy_o judgement_n to_o the_o king_n o_o god_n and_o thy_o righteousness_n to_o the_o king_n son_n imprint_v at_o london_n by_o john_n bill_n 1616._o cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n dread_a sovereign_n have_v this_o letter_n of_o dr._n carier_n be_v impart_v or_o the_o drift_n of_o it_o only_o reach_v to_o your_o majesty_n it_o will_v have_v deserve_v none_o other_o answer_n then_o your_o majesty_n private_a censure_n and_o may_v well_o have_v be_v bury_v in_o silence_n with_o the_o author_n of_o it_o but_o now_o that_o it_o not_o only_o aim_v in_o particular_a at_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n politic_a first_o the_o noble_n than_o the_o commons_o and_o last_o the_o clergy_n but_o withal_o be_v publish_v to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n and_o spread_v through_o all_o the_o quarter_n of_o your_o land_n for_o the_o better_a effect_v of_o that_o it_o aim_v unto_o and_o be_v not_o a_o little_a magnify_v by_o the_o romish_a faction_n it_o must_v needs_o argue_v in_o we_o either_o want_n of_o wisdom_n in_o prevent_v a_o mischief_n or_o of_o power_n in_o provide_v for_o our_o own_o safety_n or_o of_o zeal_n and_o sincerity_n in_o our_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n if_o it_o shall_v pass_v without_o some_o discovery_n aswell_o of_o the_o malicious_a scope_n to_o which_o it_o tend_v as_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o argument_n by_o which_o it_o endeavour_n to_o persuade_v the_o main_a end_n which_o it_o drive_v at_o be_v either_o a_o total_a reconcilement_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o if_o that_o can_v be_v a_o partial_a toleration_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n the_o general_a mean_n by_o which_o it_o strive_v to_o compass_v this_o end_n be_v first_o by_o work_v a_o distraction_n even_o among_o those_o your_o subject_n who_o every_o way_n conform_v themselves_o aswell_o to_o the_o doctrine_n as_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o public_a allowance_n in_o make_v some_o puritan_n and_o some_o protestant_n who_o in_o his_o language_n 41._o can_v endure_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v but_o can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v imply_v thereby_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v puritan_n some_o caluinist_n and_o some_o temperate_a man_n 45._o who_o can_v but_o in_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o he_o call_v catholic_a thereby_o imply_v the_o rest_n to_o be_v caluinist_n the_o one_o he_o term_v the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o other_o his_o honest_a and_o love_a brethren_n whereof_o he_o profess_v he_o know_v many_o and_o himself_o to_o be_v one_o whereas_o in_o truth_n if_o any_o such_o there_o be_v the_o difference_n shall_v rather_o have_v be_v make_v betwixt_o protestant_n and_o papist_n english_a and_o romish_a catholic_n since_o they_o who_o can_v be_v content_a the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o reformation_n can_v in_o my_o judgement_n be_v none_o other_o than_o papist_n and_o those_o that_o in_o their_o judgement_n approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pretend_a catholic_a religion_n can_v as_o far_o as_o i_o apprehend_v it_o be_v none_o other_o than_o romish_a catholic_n thus_o those_o who_o we_o call_v papist_n he_o call_v temperate_a protestant_n and_o those_o who_o we_o call_v protestant_n he_o call_v state_n puritan_n the_o second_o general_a mean_n for_o the_o compass_v of_o his_o desire_a end_n be_v a_o endeavour_n to_o work_v a_o utter_a separation_n betwixt_o our_o church_n and_o other_o reform_a church_n special_o those_o of_o france_n and_o the_o netherlands_o who_o therefore_o in_o contempt_n he_o call_v hugonot_n and_o geux_n and_o their_o doctrine_n caluinisme_n intend_v thereby_o as_o i_o conceive_v either_o to_o weaken_v our_o strength_n by_o leave_v we_o to_o stand_v single_a or_o which_o be_v worse_o to_o enforce_v we_o at_o length_n to_o relapse_n upon_o rome_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n be_v he_o bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o their_o doctrine_n make_v as_o much_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o that_o of_o rome_n whereas_o the_o write_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n aswell_o on_o their_o as_o on_o our_o side_n our_o harmony_n of_o confession_n the_o testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n nay_o the_o bull_n pope_n himself_o in_o his_o bull_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n your_o majesty_n 109_o book_n and_o practice_v in_o the_o match_v of_o that_o noble_a lady_n your_o daughter_n and_o in_o permit_v those_o church_n the_o free_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n within_o your_o dominion_n so_o plain_o evince_v the_o contrary_a that_o i_o wonder_v have_v let_v fall_v so_o foul_a a_o blot_n from_o his_o pen_n he_o dare_v present_v it_o to_o your_o majesty_n view_n and_o yet_o i_o need_v not_o wonder_n consider_v he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o tell_v your_o majesty_n that_o for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v write_v in_o your_o apology_n or_o premonition_n you_o may_v when_o you_o please_v admit_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n which_o must_v needs_o argue_v either_o that_o he_o be_v mere_o ignorant_a what_o your_o majesty_n have_v write_v or_o care_v not_o at_o all_o what_o himself_o write_v regard_v rather_o the_o evenness_n of_o his_o style_n and_o the_o cadencie_n of_o his_o sentence_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o assertion_n like_o false_a window_n bear_v proportion_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o building_n but_o without_o light_n by_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o assertion_n your_o majesty_n may_v make_v a_o estimate_n of_o the_o whole_a piece_n in_o which_o if_o i_o can_v judge_v any_o thing_n i_o have_v not_o meet_v within_o the_o narrow_a compass_n of_o so_o short_a a_o treatise_n so_o formal_o pen_v and_o carry_v so_o fair_a a_o outside_n so_o many_o weak_a argument_n so_o many_o gross_a mistake_n so_o many_o notorious_a falsehood_n so_o many_o irreconciliable_a contradiction_n so_o many_o sandy_a and_o disjoint_a consequence_n howsoever_o be_v his_o proof_n never_o so_o strong_a so_o sure_a so_o true_a so_o consonant_a so_o coherent_a yet_o be_v he_o a_o man_n most_o unfit_a to_o intermeddle_v in_o a_o business_n of_o union_n and_o pacification_n who_o be_v so_o far_o engage_v to_o one_o party_n as_o by_o his_o own_o acknowledgement_n he_o be_v persuade_v 20._o that_o all_o the_o religion_n at_o this_o day_n prescribe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a religion_n and_o promise_v particular_o to_o justify_v it_o from_o point_n to_o point_n when_o time_n and_o opportunity_n shall_v serve_v and_o your_o majesty_n together_o with_o we_o of_o the_o same_o profession_n he_o range_v 13._o among_o jew_n and_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n for_o refuse_v to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o god_n bless_v not_o his_o vain_a project_n mr._n henry_n constable_n die_v within_o fortnight_n after_o he_o come_v from_o paris_n by_o cardinal_n perron_n appointment_n to_o liege_n to_o confer_v with_o he_o and_o himself_o a_o while_n after_o in_o paris_n within_o a_o month_n of_o his_o come_n thither_o to_o confer_v with_o the_o cardinal_n yet_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o abel_n be_v dead_a he_o yet_o speak_v though_o in_o a_o different_a manner_n and_o the_o speech_n of_o dead_a man_n common_o prove_v more_o effectual_a more_o profitable_a or_o more_o dangerous_a than_o that_o of_o the_o live_n for_o your_o majesty_n there_o be_v god_n be_v thank_v no_o fear_n at_o all_o the_o obligation_n by_o which_o you_o have_v tie_v yourself_o to_o the_o religion_n establish_v among_o we_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o strong_a and_o withal_o his_o motive_n for_o inducement_n to_o the_o contrary_a so_o weak_a deal_v with_o your_o majesty_n as_o the_o devil_n do_v with_o our_o saviour_n who_o be_v beat_v from_o scripture_n fall_v to_o the_o promise_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o kingdom_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n to_o perform_v only_o for_o their_o sake_n some_o reply_n seem_v not_o unnecessary_a of_o who_o it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v which_o he_o false_o affirm_v of_o your_o majesty_n that_o 6._o they_o embrace_v shadow_n
reason_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v or_o at_o least_o wise_a former_o have_v the_o word_n mystery_n engrave_v on_o his_o diadem_n since_o in_o the_o seventeen_o of_o the_o revel_v at_o the_o five_o verse_n it_o be_v foretell_v it_o shall_v be_v write_v on_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o ●reat_a whore_n for_o to_o pass_v by_o other_o depth_n of_o satan_n as_o they_o be_v call_v revel_v 2._o verse_n 24._o i_o will_v know_v what_o religion_n be_v enter_fw-mi in_o the_o world_n which_o invent_v a_o policy_n like_a to_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n in_o general_a but_o special_o in_o marriage_n it_o be_v hitherto_o the_o best_a stake_n in_o his_o hedge_n and_o without_o exception_n the_o strong_a sinew_n for_o the_o tie_n of_o christian_a prince_n unto_o he_o as_o to_o their_o head_n they_o be_v make_v many_o of_o they_o by_o it_o legitimate_a and_o illegitimate_a without_o it_o so_o they_o stand_v in_o a_o manner_n bind_v to_o defend_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o same_o sword_n that_o they_o do_v their_o own_o crown_n and_o i_o be_o very_o persuade_v be_v it_o not_o that_o they_o lie_v obnoxious_a to_o he_o in_o this_o regard_n some_o of_o they_o will_v not_o stick_v so_o close_o to_o he_o as_o they_o do_v especial_o since_o the_o publish_n of_o his_o majesty_n learned_a and_o godly_a premonition_n unto_o they_o far_o what_o use_v they_o make_v of_o confession_n for_o the_o discovery_n of_o all_o secret_n as_o well_o of_o nature_n as_o of_o state_n indulgence_n canonisation_n consecration_n of_o their_o bloody_a inquisition_n which_o like_o a_o sharp_a northern_a wind_n nip_v the_o spring_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o bud_n of_o forge_v false_a author_n and_o corrupt_v the_o true_a of_o suppress_v the_o book_n of_o our_o writer_n and_o correct_v their_o own_o of_o spread_v false_a rumour_n and_o raze_v all_o antiquity_n that_o make_v against_o they_o the_o world_n have_v long_o since_o discover_v beside_o all_o this_o they_o have_v a_o bait_n for_o every_o fish_n a_o motive_n to_o draw_v every_o several_a humour_n for_o a_o ambitious_a disposition_n they_o have_v a_o triple_a crown_n or_o a_o cardinal_n cap_n for_o a_o contemplative_a a_o monk_n cloister_n or_o a_o friar_n cowl_n for_o a_o work_a practical_a head_n employment_n in_o state_n affair_n for_o a_o scholastic_a preach_v &_o write_v and_o in_o writing_n some_o they_o set_v to_o meditation_n some_o to_o politic_a discourse_n some_o to_o case_n of_o conscience_n some_o to_o commentary_n some_o to_o controversy_n according_a to_o the_o several_a point_n and_o temper_n of_o their_o wit_n nay_o he_o that_o shall_v but_o consider_v the_o politic_a form_n of_o government_n observe_v in_o the_o only_a order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n their_o rule_n their_o intelligence_n their_o correspondence_n their_o infinite_a cunning_a device_n how_o to_o win_v some_o who_o they_o desire_v for_o respect_n to_o be_v of_o their_o society_n or_o to_o make_v their_o friend_n and_o to_o disgrace_n or_o remove_v other_o who_o they_o suspect_v to_o stand_v in_o theirway_v may_v just_o pronounce_v of_o they_o that_o they_o have_v perfect_o learn_v the_o former_a part_n of_o our_o saviour_n lesson_n 1●_n be_v wise_a as_o serpent_n but_o not_o the_o latter_a be_v you_o innocent_a as_o dove_n whereas_o nothing_o argue_v the_o inocency_n of_o our_o cause_n more_o then_o that_o it_o hitherto_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v support_v mere_o by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n h_o surely_n if_o true_a religion_n be_v unchangeable_a than_o the_o romish_n can_v be_v the_o true_a it_o have_v suffer_v so_o many_o change_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n that_o we_o may_v now_o just_o question_v it_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o same_o or_o no_o as_o the_o scholar_n of_o athens_n do_v theseus_n his_o ship_n after_o many_o reparation_n we_o may_v seek_v rome_n in_o rome_n itself_o and_o not_o find_v it_o i_o will_v instance_n only_o in_o the_o mass_n which_o like_o a_o beggar_n cloakehath_fw-mi receive_v so_o many_o addition_n and_o patche●_n that_o if_o s._n peter_n shall_v now_o live_v to_o see_v a_o priest_n say_v mass_n he_o will_v without_o doubt_n conceive_v it_o to_o be_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o the_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n death_n or_o the_o administration_n of_o his_o supper_n and_o to_o speak_v a_o truth_n as_o long_a as_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v hold_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o lively_a oracle_n and_o eternal_a truth_n of_o god_n it_o ca●not_v be_v but_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v ground_v on_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o subject_a to_o variation_n as_o be_v the_o conception_n of_o man_n mind_n so_o that_o your_o ground_n for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o that_o religion_n wherein_o a_o ma●_n may_v find_v rest_n unto_o his_o soul_n be_v excellent_a good_a but_o your_o application_n erroneous_a since_o there_o be_v indeed_o no_o rest_n but_o upon_o eternal_a truth_n and_o no_o truth_n eternal_a but_o that_o which_o be_v divine_a b._n c._n 3._o my_o next_o care_n than_o be_v after_o i_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n by_o all_o the_o best_a mean_n i_o can_v to_o inform_v myself_o whether_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n be_v indeed_o the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v prefigure_v and_o prophesy_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v perfect_v by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o it_o deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n to_o continue_v by_o perpetual_a succession_n in_o his_o visible_a church_n until_o his_o come_n again_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o new_a one_o for_o private_a purpose_n of_o statesman_n invent_v and_o by_o humane_a law_n establish_v of_o this_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o make_v some_o doubt_n because_o i_o hear_v man_n talk_v much_o in_o those_o day_n of_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v then_o late_o make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n g._n h._n 3._o i_o will_v demand_v by_o m._n doctor_n leave_n whetherman_n may_v not_o talk_v as_o much_o of_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n mary_n reign_n as_o queen_n elizabeth_n but_o you_o will_v say_v queen_n mary_n be_v a_o restitution_n to_o the_o ancient_a and_o we_o reply_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v a_o restitution_n to_o a_o more_o ancient_a and_o most_o true_a it_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a be_v the_o most_o true_a so_o that_o in_o this_o regard_n we_o may_v just_o say_v nos_fw-la non_fw-la sumus_fw-la novatores_fw-la sed_fw-la vos_fw-la estis_fw-la veteratores_fw-la and_o with_o our_o saviour_n 8._o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o b._n c._n 4._o i_o be_v sorry_a to_o hear_v of_o a_o change_n and_o of_o a_o new_a religion_n see_v i_o think_v in_o reason_n if_o true_a religion_n be_v eternal_a the_o new_a religion_n can_v not_o be_v the_o true_a but_o yet_o i_o hope_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n be_v not_o a_o change_n or_o a_o new_a religion_n but_o a_o restitution_n of_o the_o old_a and_o that_o the_o change_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o in_o process_n of_o time_n may_v perhaps_o grow_v to_o be_v superstitious_a and_o idolatrous_a and_o that_o therefore_o england_n have_v do_v well_o to_o leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o reform_v itself_o and_o for_o this_o purpose_n i_o do_v at_o my_o leisure_n and_o best_a opportunity_n as_o i_o come_v to_o more_o judgement_n read_v over_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n and_o observe_v all_o the_o a●terations_n of_o religion_n that_o i_o can_v find_v therein_o but_o when_o i_o find_v there_o that_o the_o present_a religion_n of_o england_n be_v a_o plain_a change_n and_o change_v upon_o change_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o the_o change_n at_o all_o at_o the_o first_o but_o only_o that_o ●_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o be_v desirous_a to_o change_v his_o old_a bedfellow_n that_o he_o may_v leave_v some_o heir_n male_n behind_o he_o for_o belike_o he_o fear_v the_o female_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v the_o title_n of_o scotland_n and_o that_o the_o change_n be_v continue_v and_o increase_v by_o the_o posterity_n of_o his_o latter_a wife_n i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o suspect_v some_o thing_n but_o yet_o the_o before_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o hope_v of_o preferment_n will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o believe_v but_o that_o all_o be_v well_o and_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v g._n h._n 4._o you_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o your_o care_n be_v assoon_o as_o you_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n by_o all_o mean_v you_o can_v to_o inform_v yourself_o whether_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n be_v indeed_o the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v prefigure_v and_o prophesy_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v perfect_v by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o
his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o but_o suppress_v that_o which_o make_v against_o he_o to_o keep_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n now_o if_o any_o man_n far_o desire_v his_o majesty_n meaning_n in_o calling_n rome_n the_o mother_n church_n he_o have_v full_o express_v himself_o in_o his_o premonition_n patriarch_n say_v he_o i_o know_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o i_o likewise_o reverence_v that_o institution_n for_o order_n sake_n and_o among_o they_o be_v a_o contention_n for_o the_o first_o place_n and_o for_o myself_o if_o that_o be_v yet_o the_o question_n i_o will_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n give_v my_o consent_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v the_o first_o seat_n i_o be_v a_o western_a king_n will_v go_v with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o his_o majesty_n meaning_n be_v and_o be_v to_o yield_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o other_o western_a bishop_n in_o case_n they_o shall_v meet_v i●_n council_n a_o priority_n in_o sit_v not_o a_o superiority_n in_o command_v a_o primacy_n or_o they_o precedency_n in_o order_n not_o a_o supremacy_n in_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v the_o mark_n which_o mr._n doctor_n drive_v at_o and_o from_o thence_o labour_v cunning_o but_o malicious_o to_o infer_v contrary_a to_o his_o majesty_n both_o mind_n and_o word_n i_o conclude_v this_o point_n with_o a_o reverend_a 237._o prelate_n his_fw-la vicarship_n to_o christ_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o strong_a and_o plain_a evidence_n than_o you_o have_v yet_o show_v before_o we_o may_v grant_v it_o and_o for_o his_o patriarkeship_n say_v he_o which_o you_o now_o take_v hold_v of_o by_o god_n law_n he_o have_v nne_v in_o this_o realm_n for_o ●ixe_v hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n he_o have_v none_o for_o the_o last_o six_o hundred_o as_o look_v to_o great_a matter_n he_o will_v have_v none_o above_o and_o against_o the_o sw●rd_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v he_o can_v have_v none_o to_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o oppression_n of_o his_o brethren_n in_o right_a reason_n and_o equity_n he_o shall_v have_v none_o you_o must_v seek_v far_o for_o subjection_n to_o his_o tribunal_n this_o land_n owe_v he_o none_o b._n c._n 18._o there_o be_v another_o statute_n in_o england_n make_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o confirm_v by_o your_o majesty_n that_o it_o be_v 2._o death_n for_o any_o english_a man_n to_o be_v in_o england_n be_v make_v a_o priest_n by_o authority_n derive_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o rome_n bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o can_v believe_v that_o i_o be_o a_o priest_n at_o all_o unless_o i_o be_v derive_v by_o authority_n from_o gregory_n the_o great_a from_o whence_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o england_n have_v their_o be_v if_o they_o have_v any_o be_v at_o all_o g._n h._n 18._o the_o statute_n intend_v be_v the_o 27._o of_o eliz._n cap._n 2._o which_o indeed_o in_o the_o body_n thereof_o have_v word_n sound_v to_o that_o purpose_n but_o the_o sense_n be_v malicious_o pervert_v and_o the_o inference_n thereupon_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v through_o that_o statute_n and_o consider_v all_o the_o part_n shall_v clear_o perceive_v that_o thereby_o none_o other_o priest_n be_v intend_v then_o popish_a priest_n make_v and_o ordain_v by_o popish_a bishop_n and_o not_o such_o as_o mr._n doctor_n be_v make_v in_o england_n by_o any_o of_o our_o bishop_n here_o though_o perhaps_o it_o be_v true_a that_o our_o bishop_n do_v derive_v their_o first_o authority_n from_o gregory_n which_o we_o do_v not_o yield_v unto_o consider_v that_o augustine_n from_o who_o they_o be_v pretend_v to_o derive_v it_o be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o he_o but_o by_o aetherius_n archbishop_n of_o arles_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v our_o own_o venerable_a bede_n for_o the_o title_n of_o the_o statute_n be_v a_o act_n against_o jesuit_n seminary_n priest_n and_o such_o other_o like_o disobedient_a person_n and_o the_o preamble_n of_o the_o act_n have_v these_o word_n whereas_o diverse_a person_n call_v or_o profess_v jesuit_n seminary_n priest_n and_o other_o priest_n which_o have_v be_v and_o fro●_n time_n to_o time_n be_v make_v in_o the_o part_n beyond_o the_o sea_n by_o or_o according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v of_o late_a year_n come_v and_o be_v send_v into_o england_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o if_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n praefatio_fw-la est_fw-la clavis_fw-la statuti_fw-la we_o shall_v interpret_v the_o body_n by_o the_o title_n or_o preamble_n howsoever_o the_o word_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o act_n be_v somewhat_o general_a yet_o what_o priest_n be_v intend_v by_o the_o lawmaker_n be_v evident_a enough_o and_o except_o m._n doctor_n be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n by_o shave_v anoint_v and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o a_o popish_a bishop_n and_o that_o since_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v fear_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o law_n b._n c._n 19_o there_o be_v another_o statute_n in_o like_a manner_n make_v and_o confirm_v that_o it_o be_v death_n to_o be_v reconcile_v by_o a_o catholic_a priest_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v our_o mother_n church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n in_o england_n can_v be_v save_v that_o continue_v wilful_o out_o of_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o persuade_v the_o people_n to_o be_v reconcile_v thereunto_o if_o possible_o they_o may_v g._n h._n 19_o this_o statute_n also_o be_v either_o purposely_o or_o ignorant_o mistake_v and_o be_v not_o distinct_a from_o that_o follow_a but_o be_v both_o one_o namely_o 23._o eliz._n cap._n 1._o the_o title_n of_o it_o be_v a_o act_n to_o retain_v the_o queen_n majesty_n subject_n in_o due_a obedience_n and_o the_o preamble_n recite_v that_o whereas_o diverse_a ill_a affect_a person_n have_v practise_v to_o withdraw_v the_o queen_n subject_n from_o their_o natural_a allegiance_n the_o purueiw_n of_o the_o act_n follow_v that_o all_o person_n which_o shall_v put_v in_o practice_n to_o ●bsolue_v persuade_v or_o withdraw_v any_o of_o the_o queen_n subject_n from_o their_o natural_a obedience_n to_o her_o majesty_n or_o to_o withdraw_v they_o for_o that_o intent_n from_o the_o religion_n establish_v and_o so_o forth_o shall_v be_v traitor_n and_o the_o person_n willing_o absolve_v or_o withdraw_v as_o aforesaid_a to_o be_v likewise_o a_o traitor_n so_o that_o the_o withdraw_n of_o the_o subject_n from_o their_o natural_a obedience_n or_o for_o that_o intent_n from_o the_o religion_n establish_v be_v the_o offence_n make_v treason_n and_o not_o simple_a exhort_v to_o the_o romish_a religion_n as_o be_v allege_v and_o yet_o to_o speak_v a_o truth_n i_o see_v not_o how_o any_o exhortation_n to_o a_o absolute_a submission_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o the_o will_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n jurisdiction_n which_o now_o be_v make_v the_o only_a essential_a form_n of_o that_o religion_n can_v well_o be_v sever_v from_o such_o a_o intent_n but_o rome_n you_o say_v be_v the_o mother_n church_n and_o no_o man_n in_o england_n can_v be_v save_v that_o continue_v wilful_o out_o of_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o that_o church_n where_o if_o you_o term_v it_o the_o mother_n church_n in_o that_o sense_n that_o his_o majesty_n do_v we_o embrace_v it_o but_o if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o she_o be_v our_o mother_n either_o in_o regard_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o first_o life_n or_o still_o shall_v receive_v the_o nourishment_n of_o religion_n from_o she_o we_o deny_v it_o our_o nation_n be_v first_o convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n who_o entomb_v the_o corpse_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o lie_v himself_o inter_v at_o glastenbury_n together_o with_o twelve_o disciple_n his_o assistant_n where_o they_o first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o gildas_n affirm_v in_o the_o life_n of_o aurelius_n ambrose_n and_o malmesbury_n in_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o antiquity_n of_o glastenbury_n write_v to_o henry_n of_o bloys_n brother_n to_o king_n steven_n and_o abbot_n of_o the_o same_o place_n and_o it_o be_v consent_v unto_o by_o the_o learned_a antiquary_n of_o late_a time_n as_o namely_o mr._n cambden_n john_n bale_n matthew_n parker_n polydore_n virgil_n and_o other_o ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o best_a approve_a and_o most_o ancient_a writer_n and_o withal_o consider_v our_o keep_n of_o easter_n and_o other_o ceremony_n be_v after_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o western_a at_o the_o come_n of_o austin_n i_o may_v very_o well_o conjecture_v that_o our_o
state_n be_v now_o settle_v and_o a_o continual_a posterity_n like_a to_o ensue_v of_o one_o nature_n and_o condition_n god_n know_v what_o that_o forcible_a weapon_n of_o necessity_n may_v constrain_v and_o drive_v man_n unto_o at_o length_n but_o thanks_n be_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v so_o fix_v and_o establish_v the_o royal_a heart_n of_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_n as_o that_o neither_o his_o bloody_a threat_n nor_o your_o sugar_a promise_n can_v move_v it_o one_o point_n from_o the_o centre_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o himself_o have_v still_o profess_v and_o in_o which_o his_o posterity_n be_v train_v up_o and_o thus_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o foundation_n upon_o which_o the_o first_o reason_n of_o your_o vain_a hope_n be_v ground_v be_v discover_v god_n in_o his_o promise_n be_v always_o most_o sure_a but_o this_o your_o reason_n pretend_v to_o be_v ground_v thereupon_o most_o unsure_a since_o neither_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v find_v at_o this_o day_n in_o that_o church_n which_o you_o call_v catholic_a neither_o be_v temporal_a blessing_n always_o annex_v to_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v indeed_o true_a thus_o much_o you_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o hall_n the_o jesuite_n who_o after_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o powderplot_n recite_v unto_o littleton_n for_o his_o comfort_n certain_a example_n of_o heretic_n overcome_v catholic_n in_o battle_n and_o infidel_n overthrow_v christian_n or_o of_o father_n robert_n parson_n in_o his_o reply_n to_o his_o majesty_n touch_v queen_n elizabeth_n happiness_n outward_a felicity_n say_v he_o be_v worldling_n argument_n no_o necessary_a improvement_n of_o god_n blessing_n howbeit_o father_n robert_n bellarmine_n make_v it_o one_o of_o the_o 15._o and_o bozius_n one_o of_o his_o 100_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o much_o rather_o and_o better_o may_v you_o have_v learn_v it_o of_o the_o prophet_n david_n who_o be_v so_o sore_o perplex_v with_o this_o point_n that_o till_o he_o go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o there_o upon_o consultation_n with_o he_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o he_o be_v well_o nigh_o at_o his_o wit_n end_n say_v to_o himself_o in_o a_o kind_n of_o despair_n 73._o than_o have_v i_o cleanse_v my_o heart_n in_o vain_a in_o vain_a have_v i_o wash_v my_o hand_n in_o innocence_n yet_o if_o the_o argument_n be_v infallible_a god_n have_v approve_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o majesty_n religion_n by_o those_o manifold_a outward_a blessing_n and_o miraculous_a deliverance_n which_o of_o his_o merche_n he_o have_v vouchsafe_v he_o so_o that_o his_o majesty_n may_v just_o take_v up_o that_o of_o the_o same_o prophet_n in_o another_o place_n 103._o bless_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n and_o forget_v not_o all_o his_o benefit_n who_o redeem_v thy_o life_n from_o destruction_n who_o crown_v thou_o with_o love_a kindness_n and_o tender_a mercy_n and_o our_o hope_n and_o unfeigned_a prayer_n to_o god_n be_v that_o while_o his_o majesty_n cease_v not_o in_o this_o manner_n to_o honour_n god_n god_n will_v not_o cease_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o honour_v he_o and_o his_o posterity_n with_o many_o blessing_n in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o next_o with_o eternal_a happiness_n b._n c._n 10._o the_o they_o second_o reason_n of_o my_o hope_n that_o catholic_a religion_n may_v be_v a_o great_a mean_n of_o honour_n &_o security_n to_o your_o majesty_n posterity_n be_v take_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o your_o neighbour_n the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n among_o who_o there_o be_v rome_n no_o state_n ancient_a and_o true_o honourable_a but_o only_o those_o that_o be_v catholic_a the_o reason_n whereof_o i_o take_v to_o be_v because_o the_o kind_n rule_n of_o catholic_a religion_n be_v eternal_a universal_a and_o constant_a unto_o themselves_o and_o with_o all_o so_o consonant_a to_o majesty_n and_o greatness_n as_o they_o have_v make_v and_o preserve_v the_o catholic_a church_n reverend_a and_o venerable_a throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o these_o thousand_o and_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o those_o temporal_a state_n that_o have_v be_v conformable_a thereunto_o have_v be_v always_o most_o honourable_a and_o so_o be_v like_a to_o continue_v until_o they_o harken_v unto_o schism_n and_o as_o for_o those_o that_o have_v reject_v and_o oppose_v the_o rule_n of_o catholic_a religion_n they_o have_v be_v drive_v in_o short_a time_n to_o degenerate_v and_o become_v either_o tyrannical_a or_o popular_a your_o majesty_n i_o know_v do_v abhor_v tyranny_n but_o if_o schism_n and_o heresy_n may_v have_v their_o full_a swinge_n over_o the_o sea_n the_o very_a shadow_n and_o relic_n of_o majesty_n in_o england_n shall_v be_v utter_o deface_v and_o quick_o turn_v into_o helvetian_a or_o belgian_n popularity_n for_o they_o that_o make_v no_o conscience_n to_o profane_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o church_n will_n when_o they_o feel_v their_o strength_n make_v no_o bone_n to_o seek_v violate_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o child_n in_o the_o common_a wealth_n g._n h._n 10._o have_v open_v your_o entrance_n to_o a_o second_o reason_n in_o show_n but_o indeed_o the_o same_o with_o the_o former_a you_o tell_v we_o that_o among_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n there_o be_v no_o state_n ancient_a and_o true_o honourable_a but_o only_o those_o that_o be_v catholic_a wherein_o you_o do_v the_o king_n of_o denmark_n and_o sweden_n special_o the_o former_a great_a honour_n in_o consideration_n belike_o of_o his_o near_a alliance_n to_o his_o majesty_n as_o also_o to_o all_o the_o secular_a prince_n of_o germany_n the_o house_n of_o austria_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n only_o except_v and_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o prince_n elector_n palatine_n of_o rhine_n his_o majesty_n son_n in_o law_n be_v most_o bind_v to_o thank_v you_o and_o it_o seem_v you_o conceive_v so_o much_o by_o intend_v your_o journey_n to_o hydelberg_n and_o good_a reason_n you_o shall_v have_v be_v welcome_a consider_v you_o make_v both_o he_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o christendom_n that_o have_v forsake_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v both_o base_a and_o tyrannical_a whereas_o i_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v it_o that_o at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v none_o more_o moderate_a in_o their_o government_n than_o those_o who_o you_o call_v schismatic_n and_o of_o they_o the_o great_a part_n be_v never_o so_o flourish_a as_o since_o they_o renounce_v society_n with_o that_o church_n special_o the_o helvetian_n and_o belgian_n in_o who_o you_o instance_n be_v grow_v more_o rich_a more_o powerful_a and_o politic_a in_o their_o affair_n than_o ever_o before_o and_o for_o popularity_n the_o helvetian_n have_v it_o long_o before_o any_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o those_o very_a canton_n which_o call_v themselves_o catholic_a retain_v that_o form_n and_o none_o other_o unto_o this_o day_n and_o for_o the_o belgian_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n his_o apollogie_n that_o they_o ever_o challenge_v their_o freedom_n as_o due_a by_o the_o capitulation_n between_o they_o and_o their_o governor_n the_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n and_o now_o at_o last_o after_o so_o much_o christian_a blood_n spill_v as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v in_o the_o article_n of_o peace_n conclude_v between_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o they_o they_o be_v declare_v a_o free_a state_n now_o whether_o they_o make_v any_o conscience_n of_o profane_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n let_v their_o publish_a confession_n which_o testify_v and_o he_o that_o compare_v their_o practice_n with_o that_o of_o the_o italian_n may_v easy_o judge_v of_o the_o tree_n by_o the_o fruit_n whether_o we_o regard_v the_o profanation_n of_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o blaspheme_n of_o his_o name_n or_o the_o disgrace_n of_o his_o word_n or_o the_o unsanctify_a of_o his_o day_n &_o for_o his_o saint_n they_o all_o agree_v i_o speak_v for_o the_o main_a body_n of_o their_o guide_n and_o professor_n in_o give_v they_o as_o much_o honour_n as_o they_o be_v lawful_o capable_a of_o or_o will_v themselves_o willing_o receive_v and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o heresy_n you_o mean_v we_o profess_v it_o have_v have_v its_o full_a swinge_n over_o sea_n already_o but_o do_v not_o yet_o perceive_v that_o thereby_o the_o majesty_n of_o our_o king_n be_v any_o way_n violate_v but_o rather_o strengthen_v and_o increase_v last_o whereas_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o take_v the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o to_o be_v because_o the_o rule_n of_o catholic_a religion_n be_v eternal_a universal_a and_o constant_a to_o themselves_o i_o grant_v there_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o mutual_a dependence_n betwixt_o religion_n and_o civil_a policy_n the_o one_o both_o give_v
their_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n before_o they_o write_v it_o g._n h._n 4._o here_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o can_v not_o but_o wonder_v what_o mr._n dr._n meant_a if_o he_o have_v read_v and_o believe_v saint_n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n in_o affirm_v that_o he_o learn_v his_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o himself_o in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o chapter_n of_o that_o epistle_n enforce_v the_o contrary_a with_o so_o many_o and_o so_o invincible_a argument_n that_o they_o can_v not_o but_o instant_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o any_o who_o will_v offer_v to_o open_v it_o in_o defence_n of_o mr._n doctor_n assertion_n now_o i_o certify_v you_o brethren_n say_v he_o that_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v preach_v of_o i_o be_v not_o after_o man_n for_o neither_o receive_v i_o it_o of_o man_n neither_o be_v i_o teach_v it_o but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ._n second_o for_o saint_n mark_v and_o saint_n luke_n though_o they_o learn_v their_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n by_o hear_v the_o apostle_n as_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v from_o christ_n by_o hear_v and_o see_v he_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v but_o the_o former_a as_o well_o as_o the_o latter_a write_v by_o the_o instinct_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nay_o doubtless_o it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o impiety_n once_o to_o imagine_v the_o contrary_a to_o which_o purpose_n the_o word_n of_o bellarmine_n be_v worthy_a observation_n 12._o ut_fw-la veer_fw-la dicitur_fw-la epistola_fw-la principis_fw-la quae_fw-la à_fw-la principe_fw-la dictatur_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la be_v qui_fw-la eam_fw-la scripsit_fw-la antea_fw-la sciebat_fw-la quae_fw-la scripturus_fw-la erat_fw-la ita_fw-la dicitur_fw-la &_o immediatum_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la quod_fw-la scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la euangelistis_fw-la deo_fw-la inspirante_fw-la &_o dirigente_fw-la licet_fw-la scripserint_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la viderant_fw-la vel_fw-la audierant_fw-la as_o that_o be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v the_o letter_n of_o a_o prince_n which_o he_o dictate_v though_o he_o who_o write_v know_v before_o what_o he_o will_v write_v so_o be_v it_o the_o immediate_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n god_n inspire_v and_o direct_v they_o though_o they_o see_v and_o hear_v those_o thing_n before_o which_o they_o write_v last_o for_o s._n luke_n he_o learn_v not_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o write_v from_o the_o church_n himself_o be_v a_o actor_n in_o a_o chief_a part_n of_o they_o and_o whereas_o mr._n doctor_n affirm_v that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n company_n while_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n s●ella_n a_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o enarration_n upon_o the_o 24._o of_o s._n luke_n gospel_n and_o the_o 13._o verse_n assure_v we_o that_o grave_a doctor_n by_o who_o i_o take_v it_o he_o mean_v the_o father_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o s._n luke_n be_v one_o of_o those_o two_o disciple_n who_o our_o saviour_n instruct_v as_o they_o be_v journey_v to_o emmaus_n b._n c._n 5._o that_o diverse_a other_o do_v write_v the_o religion_n of_o christ_n as_o they_o do_v apprehend_v it_o but_o their_o gospel_n and_o epistle_n be_v reject_v by_o the_o church_n luke_n 1._o 1._o g._n h._n 5._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o believer_n but_o special_o their_o guide_n be_v miraculous_o endue_v as_o with_o other_o gift_n so_o with_o a_o discern_a spirit_n and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o difference_v the_o sin_n and_o person_n of_o man_n but_o judge_v of_o their_o write_n so_o that_o though_o they_o write_v a_o truth_n touch_v the_o christian_a religion_n yet_o be_v they_o able_a to_o discern_v whether_o that_o truth_n be_v write_v by_o special_a illumination_n and_o instinct_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o themselves_o be_v inspire_v whereupon_o we_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o accept_v what_o they_o accept_v as_o canonical_a and_o as_o apocryphal_a to_o reject_v what_o they_o reject_v but_o for_o the_o present_a church_n though_o it_o shall_v ten_o thousand_o time_n reject_v the_o whole_a or_o any_o parcel_n of_o that_o write_a truth_n which_o they_o accept_v yea_o though_o one_o from_o the_o dead_a or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n yet_o ought_v we_o rather_o to_o accurse_v then_o believe_v he_o notwithstanding_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o she_o be_v invest_v with_o equal_a or_o high_a power_n though_o indeed_o she_o reject_v no_o book_n as_o apocryphal_a which_o that_o church_n accept_v as_o canonical_a yet_o do_v she_o accept_v and_o impose_v diverse_a book_n as_o canonical_a which_o that_o reject_v as_o apocryphal_a b._n c._n 6._o that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n there_o will_v be_v no_o writing_n to_o try_v true_a religion_n from_o heresy_n but_o only_o the_o eternal_a truth_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o saint_n g._n h._n 6._o but_o that_o eternal_a truth_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o sain●s_n be_v the_o same_o and_o none_o other_o than_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n now_o the_o gentile_n indeed_o 12._o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v also_o perish_v without_o the_o law_n that_o be_v without_o the_o law_n write_v save_v only_o in_o the_o table_n of_o their_o heart_n but_o the_o jew_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v sin_v in_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n say_v saint_n paul_n and_o our_o saviour_n 45_o there_o be_v one_o that_o accuse_v you_o even_o moses_n in_o who_o you_o trust_v whereby_o none_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v understand_v then_o the_o law_n write_v by_o moses_n b._n c._n 7._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o man_n of_o the_o church_n admit_v canonical_a by_o council_n of_o the_o church_n preserve_v from_o tyrant_n by_o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ever_o until_o late_o expound_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n g._n h._n 7._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o man_n of_o the_o church_n we_o confess_v yet_o so_o as_o withal_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o those_o holy_a man_n write_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o also_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v admit_v canonical_a by_o the_o council_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v declare_v not_o make_v to_o be_v so_o and_o likewise_o that_o hitherto_o they_o have_v be_v preserve_v by_o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n which_o therefore_o be_v call_v 15._o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n neither_o ought_v they_o to_o be_v expound_v but_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o exposition_n to_o be_v public_o allow_v and_o receive_v touch_v fundamental_a point_n otherwise_o both_o cajetan_v and_o andradius_fw-la and_o jansenius_n and_o maldonat_n and_o diverse_a other_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o sundry_a place_n profess_v that_o they_o rest_v not_o satisfy_v in_o any_o interpretation_n give_v by_o the_o father_n but_o prefer_v either_o their_o own_o or_o some_o other_o find_v out_o in_o this_o age_n so_o that_o if_o mr._n doctor_n by_o the_o church_n understand_v the_o father_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o bar_v ourselves_o of_o that_o liberty_n which_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o challenge_n as_o due_a and_o practice_n as_o needful_a yet_o so_o as_o we_o use_v that_o liberty_n with_o moderation_n and_o sobriety_n the_o people_n submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o their_o pastor_n and_o the_o pastor_n in_o several_a to_o their_o body_n unite_v or_o represent_v where_o no_o very_a clear_a and_o manifest_a reason_n appear_v to_o the_o contrary_n b._n c._n 8._o how_o few_o man_n be_v able_a to_o read_v and_o expound_v scripture_n any_o way_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o believe_v the_o church_n then_o to_o believe_v a_o few_o private_a man_n that_o say_v they_o can_v expound_v scripture_n better_o than_o the_o church_n g._n h._n 8._o if_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o rule_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n few_o will_v be_v able_a either_o to_o expound_v or_o read_v the_o scripture_n then_o now_o be_v espencaeus_fw-la a_o dr._n of_o the_o sorbon_n witness_v that_o he_o be_v tell_v by_o a_o italian_a bishop_n that_o his_o countryman_n be_v terrify_v from_o read_v the_o scripture_n lest_o they_o shall_v become_v herettike_n but_o the_o doctor_n demand_v what_o art_n they_o then_o profess_v why_o quoth_v the_o bishop_n both_o the_o law_n but_o special_o the_o canon_n and_o robert_n stephens_n demand_v some_o of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o sorbon_n in_o what_o place_n some_o passage_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v they_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v read_v it_o in_o hierome_n or_o the_o decree_n but_o for_o
the_o new_a testament_n they_o be_v ignorant_a what_o it_o be_v nay_o one_o of_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o swear_v by_o the_o light_n that_o he_o wonder_v young_a man_n talk_v so_o much_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n himself_o be_v fifty_o year_n old_a before_o he_o understand_v so_o much_o as_o what_o it_o mean_v and_o if_o such_o blind_a guide_n lead_v the_o blind_a what_o marvel_v if_o both_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n now_o for_o believe_v private_a man_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v how_o the_o common_a people_n in_o their_o church_n come_v to_o know_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o church_n itself_o but_o by_o the_o information_n of_o private_a man_n and_o if_o any_o of_o we_o prefer_v their_o own_o judgement_n before_o the_o current_a opinion_n which_o i_o suppose_v mr._n doctor_n mean_v by_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v show_v before_o upon_o what_o ground_n they_o do_v it_o and_o that_o therein_o they_o do_v no_o more_o than_o those_o very_a romish_a divine_n who_o complain_v most_o of_o they_o b._n c._n 9_o that_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n have_v always_o boast_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o despise_v the_o church_n g._n h._n 9_o though_o the_o devil_n false_o allege_v scripture_n yet_o our_o saviour_n think_v it_o no_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o forbear_v the_o allege_v of_o it_o and_o though_o the_o pharisee_n pretend_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o embrace_v not_o their_o corrupt_a gloss_n leave_v we_o a_o example_n in_o both_o to_o follow_v his_o step_n upon_o these_o proposition_n mr._n doctor_n infer_v that_o the_o only_a way_n to_o find_v the_o true_a religion_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o inquire_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n now_o to_o know_v the_o church_n say_v he_o our_o saviour_n do_v find_v we_o must_v observe_v that_o this_o word_n do_v signify_v diverse_a thing_n sometime_o the_o house_n of_o god_n service_n sometime_o the_o congregation_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v baptise_a and_o sometime_o the_o clergy_n or_o spiritualty_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n alone_o our_o saviour_n found_v a_o church_n when_o he_o do_v call_v and_o send_v his_o apostle_n and_o give_v they_o the_o same_o power_n which_o himself_o as_o man_n have_v receive_v of_o his_o father_n then_o to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n say_v he_o we_o must_v inquire_v which_o be_v the_o clergy_n that_o be_v found_v by_o christ_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n by_o perpetual_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o from_o christ_n himself_o and_o for_o certain_a resolution_n thereof_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o three_o argument_n as_o he_o call_v they_o infallible_a whereof_o the_o first_o be_v th●_n report_n of_o chronicle_n and_o history_n the_o second_o be_v the_o universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_n of_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o variety_n novelty_n and_o repugnancy_n teach_v in_o schism_n and_o herein_o you_o may_v inquire_v say_v he_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o most_o honest_a to_o inform_v you_o the_o third_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o answer_v to_o this_o inference_n i_o will_v willing_o learn_v where_o mr._n doctor_n learn_v those_o acception_n of_o the_o church_n once_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o take_v it_o otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v take_v in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o again_o in_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v take_v otherwise_o then_o he_o take_v it_o neither_o be_v his_o two_o former_a mean_n for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o the_o church_n more_o justifiable_a than_o his_o acception_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v the_o report_n of_o chronicle_n but_o to_o grant_v that_o all_o chronicle_n speak_v as_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v they_o yet_o be_v all_o this_o but_o humane_a testimony_n a_o sufficient_a inducement_n to_o move_v but_o no_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o the_o conscience_n to_o build_v upon_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o second_o reason_n he_o refer_v his_o reader_n to_o the_o information_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o most_o honest_a but_o how_o if_o as_o learned_a and_o more_o honest_a inform_v he_o and_o that_o more_o true_o to_o the_o contrary_a here_o need_v a_o far_a inquiry_n which_o mr._n doctor_n foresee_v at_o length_n send_v we_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v force_v with_o we_o to_o confess_v that_o the_o last_o resolution_n and_o only_o infallible_a stay_n of_o the_o christian_a soul_n in_o search_n both_o of_o the_o truth_n itself_o and_o consequent_o of_o the_o true_a church_n profess_v and_o publish_v that_o truth_n must_v necessary_o rest_v upon_o that_o and_o nothing_o else_o ¶_o a_o brief_a answer_n to_o the_o other_o collection_n annex_v to_o the_o doctor_n last_o letter_n now_o for_o those_o other_o collection_n which_o be_v add_v to_o his_o letter_n as_o the_o publisher_n make_v a_o doubt_n whether_o they_o be_v make_v by_o he_o or_o no_o so_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n if_o he_o have_v live_v he_o will_v never_o have_v suffer_v they_o to_o come_v to_o the_o light_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o now_o they_o be_v publish_v notwithstanding_o because_o they_o appear_v in_o his_o name_n i_o hold_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o make_v some_o answer_n unto_o they_o first_o then_o for_o the_o miserable_a end_n of_o such_o as_o have_v oppose_v the_o catholic_a church_n he_o bring_v the_o example_n of_o judas_n and_o caiphas_n and_o annas_n and_o the_o three_o herod_n and_o pontius_n pilate_n and_o nero_n and_o domitian_n and_o pharaoh_n and_o haman_n and_o jezebel_n and_o antiochus_n and_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o a_o number_n of_o like_a stuff_n after_o he_o come_v to_o arch-heretike_n translate_n word_n for_o word_n what_o bellarmine_n thereof_o have_v observe_v in_o his_o 17._o chapter_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o make_v the_o 14._o note_n to_o be_v infaelix_fw-la exitus_fw-la seu_fw-la finis_fw-la eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la oppugnant_fw-la the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o such_o as_o have_v oppugn_v the_o church_n the_o great_a part_n of_o which_o except_v those_o last_o which_o master_n doctor_n be_v please_v to_o call_v the_o monster_n of_o our_o age_n we_o condemn_v as_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o doctor_n do_v or_o bellarmin_n do_v but_o for_o the_o fabulous_a narration_n of_o their_o end_n we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o bellarmine_n as_o unjust_o vouch_v the_o authority_n of_o cochlaeus_fw-la and_o bolsecke_n as_o the_o doctor_n suppress_v bellarmine_n for_o what_o law_n humane_a or_o divine_a civil_a or_o natural_a admit_v a_o man_n mortal_a and_o swear_a enemy_n to_o be_v witness_n against_o he_o yet_o such_o be_v cochlaeus_fw-la unto_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o bolseck_n unto_o calvin_n who_o both_o as_o they_o deadly_o hate_v they_o for_o their_o religion_n as_o the_o samaritan_n do_v the_o jew_n so_o have_v bolseck_n a_o particular_a grudge_n against_o calvin_n for_o that_o he_o oppose_v himself_o so_o vehement_o against_o his_o wicked_a error_n and_o seditious_a practice_n in_o geneva_n as_o he_o procure_v his_o banishment_n from_o thence_o which_o move_v he_o to_o seek_v this_o base_a kind_n of_o revenge_n upon_o he_o the_o rather_o be_v l●gd●n_n request_v and_o solicit_v thereunto_o as_o he_o say_v himself_o by_o very_a many_o his_o lord_n and_o friend_n as_o hope_v by_o the_o defamation_n of_o calvin_n to_o recover_v his_o lose_a credit_n with_o they_o and_o as_o be_v their_o malicious_a enemy_n they_o will_v not_o report_v the_o truth_n so_o not_o be_v present_a at_o their_o end_n they_o can_v not_o have_v certain_a knowledge_n thereof_o at_o leastwise_o their_o testimony_n can_v with_o any_o reasonable_a or_o indifferent_a mind_n counterpoise_v the_o evidence_n of_o those_o worthy_a man_n who_o be_v eye-witness_n and_o present_a with_o they_o for_o pluris_fw-la est_fw-la oculatus_fw-la testis_fw-la unus_fw-la quam_fw-la auriti_fw-la decem_fw-la one_o eyewitness_n be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o ten_o eare-witness_n and_o it_o be_v great_a folly_n r●sp●n●●amus_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n to_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o present_a rather_o than_o of_o they_o that_o be_v present_a but_o let_v we_o particular_o and_o several_o but_o brief_o examine_v their_o slander_n luther_n say_v the_o doctor_n out_o of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o out_o of_o cochlaeus_fw-la die_v sudden_o for_o have_v sup_v very_o delicate_o and_o pleasant_o be_v in_o perfect_a health_n and_o have_v delight_v all_o his_o company_n with_o merry_a conceit_n the_o same_o night_n he_o die_v but_o 3._o tho._n bozius_n a_o friar_n of_o the_o new_a oratory_n order_n report_v otherwise_o and_o that_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o that_o then_o be_v luther_n servant_n but_o since_o as_o he_o say_v become_v they_o in_o religion_n namely_o
who_o judge_v of_o matter_n only_o by_o event_n as_o geometrician_n measure_v the_o height_n of_o tower_n by_o their_o shadow_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o turn_v every_o accident_n to_o a_o argument_n for_o their_o own_o purpose_n but_o such_o as_o judge_v of_o event_n by_o look_v into_o their_o cause_n which_o not_o many_o love_n much_o to_o busy_v their_o brain_n about_o nor_o be_v indeed_o capable_a of_o and_o frame_v not_o argument_n to_o their_o opinion_n but_o contrariwise_o submit_v their_o opinion_n to_o the_o soundness_n and_o force_n of_o argument_n such_o i_o ●ay_v i_o be_o sure_a it_o can_v much_o move_v a_o answer_n to_o d._n carrier_n letter_n to_o the_o king_n majesty_n chap._n i._n the_o mean_n of_o my_o conversion_n to_o catholic_a religion_n benjamin_n carier_n 1._o i_o must_v confess_v to_o god_n honour_n and_o my_o own_o shame_n a_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o my_o power_n to_o choose_v i_o will_v never_o have_v be_v a_o catholic_a i_o be_v bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o 5._o schism_n and_o be_v teach_v to_o b_o abhor_v a_o papist_n as_o much_o as_o any_o puritan_n in_o england_n do_v i_o have_v ever_o a_o great_a desire_n to_o justify_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o state_n and_o have_v great_a c_o hope_v to_o advance_v myself_o thereby_o neither_o be_v my_o hope_n ever_o so_o great_a as_o by_o your_o majesty_n favour_n it_o be_v d_o at_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o my_o resolution_n for_o catholic_a religion_n and_o the_o preferment_n i_o have_v together_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o your_o majesty_n service_n be_v great_a by_o much_o then_o without_o your_o majesty_n favour_n i_o look_v for_o in_o this_o world_n but_o although_o i_o be_v a●_n heresy_n ambitious_a of_o your_o majesty_n favour_n and_o as_o desirous_a of_o the_o honour_n and_o pleasure_n of_o my_o country_n as_o any_o man_n that_o be_v therein_o yet_o see_v that_o i_o be_v not_o like_a any_o long_a while_n to_o enjoy_v they_o and_o if_o i_o shall_v for_o my_o private_a commodity_n speak_v or_o write_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o against_o the_o evidence_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n i_o must_v short_o appear_v before_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o same_o his_o church_n to_o give_v a_o account_n thereof_o therefore_o i_o neither_o dare_v any_o further_a to_o pursue_v my_o own_o desire_n of_o honour_n nor_o to_o hazard_v my_o soul_n any_o far_o in_o the_o iustification_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o i_o see_v be_v e_o impossible_a to_o be_v 21._o justify_v by_o any_o such_o reason_n as_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v go_v for_o payment_n and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o i_o have_v not_o respect_v any_o thing_n so_o much_o in_o this_o world_n as_o my_o friend_n duty_n to_o your_o majesty_n and_o my_o love_n to_o my_o friend_n &_o country_n i_o humble_o beseech_v you_o give_v i_o leave_v as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v to_o recount_v unto_o you_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o my_o study_n and_o endeavour_n in_o this_o kind_n even_o malueg_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o my_o life_n until_o this_o present_a george_n hakewil_n 1._o a_o in_o say_v you_o will_v never_o have_v be_v a_o catholic_a place_n if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o your_o power_n to_o choose_v you_o seem_v to_o fall_v upon_o that_o opinion_n which_o be_v wrongful_o thrust_v upon_o calvin_n that_o we_o be_v convert_v as_o it_o be_v by_o constraint_n whether_o we_o will_v or_o no_o and_o consequent_o you_o overthrow_v both_o the_o freedom_n of_o will_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n b_o it_o seem_v then_o your_o father_n who_o bring_v you_o up_o do_v much_o abhor_v a_o papist_n and_o yet_o you_o confess_v in_o the_o next_o section_n that_o he_o be_v a_o learned_a and_o devout_a man_n and_o that_o he_o season_v you_o with_o the_o principle_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n c_o your_o great_a hope_n be_v indeed_o always_o beyond_o your_o just_a de●●rts_n yet_o his_o majesty_n may_v be_v draw_v to_o favour_v you_o the_o ra●her_n for_o that_o hypocritical_a sermon_n which_o you_o make_v last_o before_o he_o in_o his_o ●happell_n at_o whitehall_n d_o so_o it_o seem_v you_o resolve_v for_o the_o pretend_a catholic_a religion_n before_o your_o part_n from_o hence_o howbeit_o before_o you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o you_o get_v licence_n to_o travel_v to_o the_o spa_n only_o for_o your_o health_n and_o afterward_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o go_v hence_o hope_v to_o find_v some_o great_a offence_n in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o you_o have_v do_v in_o their_o book_n that_o so_o you_o may_v return_v better_o content_v to_o persecute_v and_o abhor_v the_o catholic_n at_o your_o pleasure_n thus_o for_o your_o advantage_n you_o turn_v your_o tale_n as_o mariner_n do_v their_o sail_n e_o no_o reason_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o all_o likelihood_n shall_v better_o go_v for_o payment_n then_o that_o which_o the_o judge_n as_o a_o rule_n to_o be_v judge_v by_o himself_o have_v leave_v we_o and_o of_o which_o we_o may_v say_v if_o we_o be_v deceive_v thou_o peter_n thou_o paul_n or_o thou_o christ_n have_v deceive_v us._n but_o whether_o on_o the_o other_o side_n your_o humane_a invention_n or_o as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o 23._o voluntary_a religion_n and_o will-worship_n will_v then_o pass_v for_o currant_n pay_v a_o just_a doubt_n may_v be_v make_v of_o which_o he_o may_v just_o say_v as_o he_o do_v to_o his_o people_n by_o his_o 12._o prophet_n who_o have_v require_v these_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n b._n c._n 2._o i_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o year_n 1566._o be_v the_o son_n of_o anthony_n carier_n a_o learned_a and_o devout_a man_n who_o although_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n and_o a_o preacher_n yet_o do_v so_o season_v i_o with_o the_o principle_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n as_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o ever_o since_o be_v very_a f_o zealous_a in_o matter_n of_o ambition_n religion_n of_o he_o i_o learn_v that_o all_o g_o false_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o policy_n invent_v for_o the_o temporal_a service_n of_o prince_n and_o state_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o be_v diverse_a and_o always_o changeable_a according_a to_o the_o diverse_a reason_n and_o occasion_n of_o state_n h_o but_o true_a christian_a religion_n be_v a_o truth_n reveal_v of_o god_n for_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o therefore_o be_v like_a to_o god_n always_o one_o and_o the_o same_o so_o that_o all_o prince_n and_o state_n in_o the_o world_n never_o have_v be_v nor_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o it_o overthrow_v that_o religion_n this_o to_o i_o seem_v a_o excellent_a ground_n for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o that_o religion_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v find_v rest_n unto_o his_o soul_n which_o can_v be_v satisfy_v with_o any_o thing_n but_o eternal_a truth_n g._n h._n 2._o f_o a_o zealous_a man_n indeed_o yourself_o confess_v in_o your_o preface_n that_o you_o then_o begin_v to_o look_v to_o the_o health_n of_o your_o soul_n when_o you_o be_v out_o of_o hope_n to_o enjoy_v the_o health_n of_o your_o body_n and_o in_o the_o very_a section_n go_v before_o zelus_fw-la that_o you_o be_v as_o ambitious_a of_o his_o majesty_n favour_n and_o as_o desirous_a of_o the_o honour_n and_o pleasure_n of_o your_o country_n as_o any_o man_n that_o be_v therein_o but_o it_o seem_v you_o dwell_v by_o bad_a neighbour_n who_o be_v thus_o enforce_v to_o commend_v your_o own_o zeal_n or_o else_o they_o hold_v it_o of_o none_o other_o kind_n then_o that_o of_o which_o the_o 16._o apostle_n speak_v have_v strife_n for_o her_o companion_n and_o sedition_n for_o her_o daughter_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o you_o have_v zeal_n though_o 2_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n i_o rest_v well_o assure_v that_o this_o epistle_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o wise_a will_v not_o evince_v the_o contrary_n g_o your_o father_n be_v as_o you_o say_v a_o protestant_a and_o a_o preacher_n in_o all_o likelihood_n by_o false_a religion_n understand_v the_o romish_a be_v indeed_o the_o deep_a policy_n invent_v by_o man_n for_o their_o own_o purpose_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n 8._o the_o child_n of_o darkness_n be_v in_o their_o generation_n wise_a than_o the_o child_n of_o light_n and_o be_v in_o that_o regard_n right_o term_v by_o saint_n paul_n 7._o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n which_o begin_v to_o work_v in_o his_o day_n but_o since_o have_v full_o weave_v those_o thread_n which_o be_v then_o begin_v to_o be_v spin_a the_o cockatrice_n be_v now_o hatch_v which_o be_v then_o only_o in_o the_o egg_n and_o sure_o i_o think_v not_o without_o great_a
deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n and_o here_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o you_o come_v to_o more_o judgement_n for_o the_o better_a inform_v yourself_o herein_o you_o read_v over_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n a_o proper_a course_n indeed_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v read_v over_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n to_o search_v whether_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o architect_n in_o building_n agree_v with_o vitrwius_fw-la his_o precept_n or_o of_o our_o husbandman_n in_o manure_v their_o ground_n with_o columellaes_n rule_n for_o i_o own_o part_n i_o shall_v rather_o have_v think_v that_o the_o ready_a way_n to_o inform_v yourself_o aright_o have_v be_v to_o compare_v the_o religion_n of_o england_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n epistle_n act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o church_n history_n the_o end_n of_o a_o chronicle_n be_v not_o to_o show_v every_o alteration_n in_o religion_n special_o where_o it_o be_v make_v piecemeal_o insensible_o and_o by_o degree_n of_o which_o a_o man_n may_v say_v that_o he_o see_v it_o be_v change_v though_o he_o see_v not_o the_o change_n as_o he_o see_v the_o grass_n have_v grow_v though_o he_o see_v it_o nor_o grow_a and_o the_o shadow_n in_o a_o dial_n to_o have_v move_v though_o not_o move_v 25_o the_o envious_a man_n sow_v his_o tare_n in_o the_o night_n so_o that_o man_n discover_v it_o then_o when_o they_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o morning_n but_o the_o sow_v of_o they_o they_o can_v not_o observe_v because_o it_o be_v do_v cunning_o in_o the_o night_n when_o all_o man_n sleep_v and_o for_o a_o time_n they_o lay_v hide_v under_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o our_o chronicle_n so_o silent_a but_o that_o they_o every_o where_o lie_v open_a the_o just_a comp_n aint_n of_o our_o king_n and_o groan_v of_o our_o clergy_n and_o people_n under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o shall_v more_o clear_o appear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o show_v what_o benefit_n every_o estate_n may_v expect_v from_o the_o restitution_n of_o romish_a religion_n but_o you_o say_v you_o find_v the_o religion_n of_o england_n a_o plain_a change_n and_o change_v upon_o change_n but_o our_o constant_a answer_n be_v that_o which_o you_o profess_v you_o hope_v to_o find_v that_o the_o change_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n our_o change_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o scour_n off_o of_o that_o rust_n or_o the_o repair_n of_o those_o ruin_n which_o we_o find_v have_v insensible_o grow_v upon_o it_o for_o to_o suppose_v that_o tract_n of_o time_n can_v draw_v a_o corruption_n upon_o religion_n aswell_o as_o upon_o civil_a affair_n be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v imagine_v that_o castle_n indeed_o be_v subject_a to_o reparation_n but_o not_o church_n and_o for_o your_o pretend_a change_n upon_o change_n we_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o our_o common_a prayer_n book_n have_v not_o receive_v so_o many_o change_n as_o your_o breviaries_n your_o portess_n your_o legend_n your_o martyrology_n your_o pontifical_o your_o ceremonial_n and_o special_o your_o missal_n have_v do_v and_o that_o since_o our_o reformation_n nay_o since_o the_o frame_n and_o publish_v of_o our_o common_a prayer_n book_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o edward_n the_o vi_o we_o find_v no_o change_n in_o any_o material_a point_n at_o all_o save_v that_o in_o their_o litany_n they_o pray_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o name_n from_o the_o tyranny_n and_o malice_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o know_v may_v as_o just_o and_o upon_o as_o good_a reason_n have_v be_v retain_v by_o we_o as_o it_o be_v by_o they_o put_v in_o h_o now_o why_o henry_n the_o viii_o shall_v cause_n the_o first_o change_n in_o religion_n out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o change_v his_o bedfellow_n i_o see_v not_o except_o you_o esteem_v a_o restrain_v of_o the_o pope_n unlimited_a power_n in_o dispensation_n to_o be_v a_o change_n in_o religion_n and_o indeed_o it_o may_v well_o be_v since_o now_o the_o world_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o religion_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n as_o reciprocal_a as_o the_o definition_n and_o the_o thing_n define_v and_o for_o the_o change_n of_o his_o bedfellow_n it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o those_o that_o have_v read_v over_o our_o chronicle_n with_o observation_n as_o yourself_o pretend_v you_o have_v that_o he_o be_v marry_v to_o she_o at_o the_o age_n of_o 10._o year_n or_o thereabouts_o protest_v against_o it_o when_o he_o come_v to_o 14._o in_o the_o presence_n of_o richard_n fox_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n and_o john_n read_v a_o public_a notary_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o deed_n under_o his_o own_o hand_n be_v then_o prince_n of_o wales_n beside_o the_o counsel_n both_o of_o spain_n and_o of_o france_n treat_v a_o marriage_n for_o the_o lady_n mary_n the_o one_o wi●h_v charles_n the_o emperor_n the_o other_o with_o henry_n duke_n of_o orleans_n they_o both_o make_v a_o doubt_n whether_o the_o marriage_n of_o her_o mother_n have_v be_v wife_n to_o the_o king_n own_o brother_n can_v be_v dispense_v with_o or_o the_o child_n beget_v in_o this_o second_o bed_n legitimate_a and_o by_o law_n allow_v to_o succeed_v to_o the_o crown_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o d._n longland_n then_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n the_o king_n confessor_n after_o it_o have_v long_o sleep_v revive_v this_o scruple_n in_o the_o king_n conscience_n the_o cardinal_n be_v archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o legate_n to_o the_o pope_n together_o with_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n rochester_n only_a except_v who_o be_v then_o late_o make_v cardinal_n but_o lose_v his_o head_n before_o his_o hat_n come_v over_o subscribe_v and_o seal_v to_o the_o justness_n of_o the_o divorce_n both_o our_o chronicle_n university_n yea_o many_o beyond_o the_o sea_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 10._o or_o 12._o some_o of_o they_o in_o italy_n itself_o and_o under_o the_o pope_n peculiar_a jurisdiction_n confirm_v it_o under_o their_o common_a seal_n diverse_a of_o our_o unlawful_a doctor_n be_v purposely_o send_v to_o rome_n about_o it_o offer_v dispute_v before_o the_o pope_n to_o prove_v it_o cranmer_z in_o a_o private_a conference_n at_o vienna_n with_o cornelius_n agrippa_n then_o follow_v the_o emperor_n &_o every_o where_o admire_v for_o his_o learning_n so_o full_o satisfy_v he_o that_o he_o hold_v the_o proposition_n most_o true_a if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o lady_n katherine_n be_v carnal_o know_v of_o prince_n arthur_n whereof_o the_o presumption_n be_v great_a the_o one_o be_v that_o prince_n henry_n be_v defer_v from_o his_o creation_n and_o title_n of_o prince_n of_o wales_n by_o the_o space_n of_o six_o month_n after_o arthur_n decease_n upon_o a_o supposition_n that_o the_o lady_n katherine_n may_v be_v by_o he_o conceive_v with_o child_n another_o be_v that_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o say_a lady_n procure_v a_o second_o bull_n from_o the_o pope_n with_o this_o addition_n velforsan_fw-la cognitam_fw-la and_o peradventure_o carnal_o know_v which_o bull_n be_v only_o purchase_v to_o dispense_v with_o this_o marriage_n a_o three_o presumption_n be_v from_o the_o report_n of_o prince_n arthur_n chamberlain_n upon_o certain_a word_n speak_v by_o the_o prince_n the_o first_o morning_n that_o he_o rise_v from_o his_o bed_n a_o four_o be_v the_o relation_n of_o the_o ambassador_n of_o ferdinando_n her_o father_n king_n of_o spain_n be_v send_v hither_o purposely_o to_o see_v the_o marriage_n consummate_v who_o return_v their_o knowledge_n of_o their_o mutual_a conjunction_n by_o the_o mark_n and_o that_o nothing_o be_v leave_v unperformed_a of_o any_o nuptial_a right_n and_o sure_o they_o be_v both_o of_o year_n able_a enough_o to_o accomplish_v the_o act_n he_o above_o 15._o and_o she_o above_o 17._o lay_v both_o in_o one_o bed_n almost_o five_o month_n together_o do_v assure_v we_o the_o certainty_n of_o that_o which_o in_o this_o business_n be_v make_v the_o great_a scruple_n these_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o in_o appearance_n move_v henry_n the_o viii_o to_o the_o remove_n of_o his_o bedfellow_n not_o those_o which_o you_o as_o fond_o imagine_v as_o you_o suggest_v malicious_o i_o do_v not_o take_v upon_o i_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o king_n from_o all_o the_o blame_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o yet_o i_o may_v true_o say_v that_o stranger_n have_v be_v more_o favourable_a unto_o he_o than_o our_o own_o countryman_n he_o be_v deep_o and_o bitter_o tax_v not_o only_o by_o saunders_n from_o who_o nothing_o but_o such_o slander_n can_v be_v expect_v but_o by_o a_o late_a writer_n profess_v himself_o of_o our_o own_o church_n to_o the_o great_a content_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n who_o obligation_n notwithstanding_o to_o the_o daughter_n in_o the_o
censure_n of_o wise_a man_n might_n deserve_o have_v purchase_v some_o more_o respective_a term_n of_o the_o father_n whereas_o thuanus_n the_o most_o unpartial_a and_o judicious_a historiographer_n of_o our_o age_n give_v this_o testimony_n of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o singular_a natural_a endowment_n and_o such_o a_o one_o in_o who_o have_v he_o not_o too_o much_o loose_v the_o reins_n to_o this_o pleasure_n you_o can_v hardly_o find_v want_v any_o perfection_n nay_o after_o his_o divorce_n from_o his_o queen_n and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o bishop_n which_o he_o name_v say_v he_o be_v honest_a man_n and_o good_a scholar_n be_v ever_o himself_o a_o great_a patron_n of_o learning_n which_o testimony_n i_o the_o rather_o allege_v because_o the_o spanish_a expurgatorie_n index_n have_v raze_v it_o as_o also_o diverse_a other_o very_a memorable_a passage_n in_o this_o author_n b._n c._n 5._o thus_o i_o satisfy_v myself_o at_o school_n and_o study_v the_o art_n and_o philosophy_n and_o other_o humane_a learning_n until_o be_v master_n of_o art_n and_o fellow_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la college_n in_o cambridge_n i_o be_v at_o last_o by_o the_o statute_n of_o that_o house_n call_v to_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n and_o bind_v to_o take_v upon_o i_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n than_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n for_o the_o better_a satisfaction_n of_o my_o own_o soul_n and_o the_o save_n of_o otherman_n to_o look_v as_o far_o into_o the_o matter_n as_o possible_a i_o can_v that_o i_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o a_o very_a good_a library_n in_o that_o college_n i_o resolve_v with_o myself_o to_o study_v hard_a and_o set_v aside_o all_o respect_n of_o man_n then_o alive_a or_o of_o writer_n that_o have_v move_v or_o maintain_v controversy_n far_o than_o to_o image_n understand_v the_o question_n which_o be_v betwixt_o they_o i_o fall_v to_o my_o prayer_n and_o betake_v myself_o whole_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o clerk_n church_n history_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o have_v no_o interest_n on_o either_o side_n and_o special_o ●_o make_v choice_n of_o s._n augustine_n because_o i_o hope_v to_o find_v most_o comfort_n in_o he_o for_o the_o confirm_v of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o confute_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n g._n h._n 5._o after_o your_o peruse_v the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n you_o betake_v yourself_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o church_n history_n and_o ancient_a father_n and_o in_o special_a make_v choice_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o who_o you_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n every_o where_o confirm_v and_o we_o confute_v but_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o one_o main_a point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o supremacy_n of_o that_o sea_n and_o whether_o a_o chief_a feather_n in_o that_o wing_n be_v not_o appeal_n from_o foreign_a part_n now_o whether_o s._n augustine_n approve_v they_o i_o appeal_v to_o his_o practice_n be_v one_o of_o those_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n who_o discover_v and_o disclaim_v the_o impudency_n and_o forgery_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o challenge_v that_o as_o right_n which_o some_o of_o constraint_n have_v perform_v and_o other_o of_o courtesy_n have_v grant_v for_o which_o himself_o with_o his_o fellow-bishop_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v find_v in_o the_o church_n history_n so_o die_v some_o of_o his_o work_n i_o have_v read_v special_o those_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o of_o they_o i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o they_o confirm_v no_o one_o point_n of_o romish_a doctrine_n controverse_v at_o this_o day_n and_o sure_o there_o if_o any_o where_o have_v be_v the_o proper_a place_n to_o declare_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n supreme_a judge_n in_o all_o controversy_n b._n c._n 6._o in_o this_o sort_n i_o spend_v my_o time_n continual_o for_o many_o year_n and_o note_v down_o whatsoever_o i_o can_v gather_v or_o rather_o snatch_v either_o from_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o father_n to_o serve_v my_o turn_n but_o when_o after_o all_o my_o pain_n and_o desire_n to_o serve_v myself_o of_o antiquity_n i_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v every_o where_o confirm_v &_o by_o most_o profound_a demonstration_n out_o of_o tradition_n holy_a scripture_n make_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n scripture_n gospel_n and_o most_o conformable_a to_o all_o soul_n christian_a soul_n and_o see_v the_o general_n current_a opinion_n of_o our_o great_a preacher_n every_o where_o confute_v either_o in_o plain_a term_n or_o by_o most_o unanswerable_a consequence_n although_o my_o understanding_n be_v thereby_o great_o edify_v for_o which_o i_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o render_v immortal_a thanks_n to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o by_o these_o mean_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o show_v himself_o unto_o i_o yet_o my_o heart_n be_v much_o cross_v grieve_v that_o i_o must_v be_v fain_o either_o not_o to_o preach_v at_o all_o or_o to_o cross_v and_o var●e_v from_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o see_v be_v common_o receive_v g._n h._n 6._o i_o have_v peruse_v your_o common-place_n book_n write_v for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o your_o own_o hand_n and_o indeed_o it_o thereby_o appear_v that_o your_o note_n may_v more_o deserve_o be_v term_v a_o snatch_v than_o a_o gather_v though_o by_o your_o will_n you_o solemn_o bequeath_v it_o as_o a_o rich_a legacy_n to_o c.c.c._n in_o camb._n whereof_o you_o be_v a_o fellow_n but_o you_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n you_o say_v every_o where_o confirm_v by_o most_o profound_a demonstration_n from_o holy_a scripture_n in_o truth_n i_o must_v confess_v they_o be_v so_o deep_a that_o throughout_o this_o treatise_n they_o be_v invisible_a but_o i_o much_o desire_v to_o know_v by_o what_o profound_a demonstration_n from_o holy_a scripture_n you_o will_v prove_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o exercise_n of_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o language_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o people_n or_o last_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n usurpation_n over_o the_o temporal_n of_o prince_n unless_o you_o bring_v bellarmine_n profound_a demonstration_n to_o that_o purpose_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la or_o baronius_n surge_n occide_fw-la &_o manduca_fw-la or_o the_o canonist_n fecit_fw-la deus_fw-la duo_fw-la magna_fw-la luminaria_fw-la much_o like_v a_o profound_a demonstration_n i_o have_v hear_v of_o for_o proof_n of_o the_o salic_a law_n the_o lily_n neither_o labour_n nor_o spin_v therefore_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n ne_fw-fr tombe_fw-fr point_fw-fr sur_fw-fr laquenoville_n fall_v not_o to_o the_o distaff_n or_o like_o that_o of_o a_o friar_n who_o will_v needs_o prove_v that_o ten_o world_n be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o that_o out_o of_o our_o saviour_n word_n in_o the_o gospel_n anon_o decem_fw-la factisunt_fw-la mundi_fw-la but_o he_o be_v well_o answer_v by_o his_o brother_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v sed_fw-la ubisunt_fw-la novem_fw-la and_o do_v he_o not_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o d._n profundus_fw-la trow_v you_o for_o so_o profound_a a_o demonstration_n 42._o by_o such_o like_a profound_a demonstration_n you_o find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n gospel_n which_o for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v 27._o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o for_o the_o power_n of_o his_o minister_n 36._o my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n word_n deliver_v as_o it_o seem_v out_o of_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n as_o foresee_v what_o error_n shall_v in_o after_o age_n spring_v up_o in_o his_o church_n but_o you_o do_v well_o to_o say_v that_o those_o doctrine_n be_v make_v agreeable_a to_o this_o truth_n they_o may_v be_v make_v so_o or_o at_o leastwise_o make_v to_o seem_v so_o by_o forge_v and_o hammer_v upon_o the_o anvil_n of_o man_n conceit_n howbeit_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v not_o so_o as_o the_o bell_n seem_v to_o the_o child_n to_o ring_v that_o tune_n which_o run_v in_o his_o head_n b._n c._n 7._o be_v thus_o perplex_v with_o myself_o what_o course_n i_o be_v best_a to_o take_v i_o reflect_v back_o again_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o because_o the_o most_o of_o those_o preacher_n which_o draw_v the_o people_n after_o they_o in_o those_o day_n be_v puritan_n and_o have_v ground_v their_o divinity_n upon_o calvin_n institution_n i_o think_v peradventure_o that_o they_o have_v get_v the_o multitude_n on_o their_o side_n may_v wrong_v the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o they_o desire_v to_o do_v in_o her_o discipline_n which_o indeed_o
very_o honesty_n honest_a man_n and_o such_o as_o i_o do_v love_n with_o all_o my_o heart_n i_o be_v very_o loath_a to_o dissent_v from_o they_o in_o private_a much_o more_o loath_a to_o confess_v oppose_v they_o in_o public_a and_o yet_o see_v i_o must_v needs_o preach_v i_o be_v loath_a of_o all_o to_o oppugn_v my_o own_o conscience_n together_o with_o the_o faith_n wherein_o i_o be_v oppugn_v baptize_v and_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o to_o who_o i_o preach_v nevertheless_o have_v get_v this_o ground_n to_o work_v upon_o i_o begin_v to_o comfort_v myself_o with_o hope_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o religion_n establish_v in_o england_n be_v the_o same_o at_o the_o least_o in_o part_n l_o which_o now_o be_v and_o ever_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o defect_n whereof_o may_v be_v supply_v whensoever_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o move_v your_o majesty_n thereunto_o without_o abrogate_a that_n which_o be_v already_o by_o law_n establish_v which_o i_o still_o pray_v for_o and_o be_o not_o altogether_o out_o of_o m_o hope_v to_o see_v and_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n as_o far_o as_o i_o dare_v rather_o by_o n_o charitable_a construction_n to_o reconcile_v thing_n that_o seem_v different_a that_o so_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v for_o ever_o sa●ed_v in_o unity_n then_o by_o malicious_a calumniation_n to_o maintain_v quarrel_n that_o so_o man_n turn_n may_v for_o a_o time_n be_v serve_v in_o dissension_n g._n h._n 8._o l_o how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v esteem_v heretic_n who_o broach_n their_o own_o fantasy_n since_o hold_v as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v we_o hold_v the_o same_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v m_o true_o you_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o hope_v to_o live_v to_o see_v thos●_n unwarrantable_a supply_n you_o speak_v of_o by_o his_o majesty_n command_n aswell_o in_o regard_n of_o your_o own_o infirmity_n of_o body_n as_o his_o majesty_n strong_a resolution_n of_o mind_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o it_o may_v be_v your_o intelligence_n deceive_v you_o sure_o we_o be_v your_o hope_n fail_v you_o n_o touch_v your_o opinion_n of_o reconciliation_n whether_o it_o may_v be_v think_v to_o proceed_v of_o charity_n or_o arrogancy_n as_o also_o whether_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o in_o a_o manner_n possible_a as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v i_o shall_v have_v fit_a opportunity_n to_o discuss_v hereafter_o then_o in_o this_o place_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v by_o the_o way_n to_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o my_o judgement_n you_o call_v that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o distraction_n it_o tend_v to_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o rent_n and_o a_o draw_v of_o we_o further_o from_o other_o reform_a church_n and_o ne●rer_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o your_o meaning_n the_o same_o charitable_a construction_n will_v have_v serve_v to_o reconcile_v thing_n that_o to_o you_o look_v through_o the_o false_a spectacle_n of_o prejudice_n &_o passion_n seem_v very_o different_a betwixt_o we_o &_o other_o reform_a church_n abroad_o much_o better_o &_o easy_a then_o for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o those_o main_a &_o broad_a difference_n which_o be_v indeed_o betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o i_o fear_v i_o may_v too_o true_o say_v as_o abraham_n do_v to_o the_o rich_a glutton_n in_o hell_n 26._o between_o you_o and_o we_o there_o be_v a_o great_a gulf_n set_v so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v go_v from_o hence_o to_o you_o can_v not_o neither_o can_v they_o come_v from_o thence_o to_o us._n i_o speak_v in_o regard_n of_o reconciliation_n in_o difference_n of_o religion_n for_o otherwise_o but_o too_o many_o be_v suffer_v to_o go_v from_o hence_o thither_o and_o have_v suck_v their_o poison_n to_o return_v again_o at_o their_o pleasure_n for_o the_o vomit_v of_o it_o out_o among_o we_o notwithstanding_o the_o sharp_a penalty_n and_o great_a gulf_n set_v between_o us._n b._n c._n 9_o in_o this_o course_n although_o i_o do_v never_o proceed_v any_o far_a than_o law_n will_v give_v i_o leave_v yet_o i_o find_v the_o one_o puritan_n and_o caluinist_n and_o all_o the_o creature_n of_o schism_n to_o be_v my_o utter_a enemy_n who_o be_v also_o like_o the_o son_n of_o zeruiah_n too_o strong_a for_o davi●_n he_o himself_o 2._o sam_n 3._o 39_o but_o i_o well_o perceive_v that_o all_o 21._o temperate_a and_o understand_a man_n who_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o the_o schism_n be_v glad_a to_o hear_v the_o truth_n gate_n honest_o and_o plain_o preach_v unto_o they_o and_o my_o hope_n be_v by_o patience_n and_o continuance_n i_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n unmask_v hypocriosie_n hypocrisy_n and_o gain_v credit_n to_o the_o comfortable_a doctrine_n of_o antiquity_n even_o among_o those_o also_o who_o out_o of_o misinformation_n and_o prejudice_n do_v as_o yet_o most_o mislike_v it_o and_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o your_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n come_v only_o by_o o_o catholic_n and_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o schism_n which_o will_v very_o fain_o have_v utter_o extinguish_v it_o and_o that_o both_o your_o p_o disposition_n by_o nature_n your_o amity_n with_o catholic_a prince_n your_o speech_n and_o your_o proclamation_n do_v at_o the_o beginning_n all_o tend_v to_o peace_n and_o unity_n i_o hope_v that_o this_o endeavour_n of_o i_o to_o enforce_v catholic_a religion_n at_o the_o least_o as_o far_o as_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o catechism_n will_v give_v leave_n shall_v be_v well_o accept_v of_o your_o majesty_n and_o be_v as_o a_o introduction_n unto_o far_a peace_n and_o unity_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n g._n h._n 9_o o_o his_o majesty_n right_a to_o the_o crown_n be_v double_a the_o one_o from_o his_o mother_n lineal_o descend_v of_o the_o first_o match_n of_o the_o lady_n margaret_n daughter_n to_o henry_n the_o vii_o and_o sister_n to_o henry_n the_o viii_o king_n of_o england_n with_o james_n the_o four_o king_n of_o scotland_n his_o majesty_n great_a grandfather_n who_o though_o she_o embrace_v that_o religion_n in_o which_o she_o be_v bring_v up_o be_v never_o acquaint_v with_o any_o other_o yet_o as_o his_o majesty_n observe_v in_o his_o monitorie_a preface_n to_o the_o christian_a prince_n she_o dislike_v some_o of_o the_o superstitious_a ceremony_n and_o abhor_v those_o new_a opinion_n which_o the_o jesuit_n call_v catholic_a his_o second_o right_n above_o any_o other_o pre●endor_n be_v from_o his_o father_n descend_v of_o the_o second_o match_n of_o the_o say_a lady_n margaret_n with_o archibald_n douglas_n earl_n of_o angush_n be_v bring_v up_o in_o q._n elizabeth_n court_n who_o father_n the_o duke_n of_o lenox_n profess_v the_o reform_a religion_n as_o well_o appear_v by_o his_o practice_n in_o his_o life_n in_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o many_o minister_n at_o his_o death_n in_o all_o likelihood_n his_o majesty_n father_n himself_o shall_v be_v that_o way_n affect_v though_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n upon_o the_o relation_n of_o i_o know_v not_o who_o will_v fain_o have_v it_o otherwise_o and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o schism_n will_v fain_o have_v extinguish_v his_o majesty_n right_a it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o those_o who_o you_o call_v schismatics_n be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n under_o god_n to_o preserve_v his_o majesty_n not_o only_o right_a but_o life_n against_o the_o fury_n of_o some_o who_o you_o call_v catholic_n both_o before_o his_o mother_n death_n and_o since_o p_o from_o his_o majesty_n progenitor_n you_o come_v to_o his_o own_o disposition_n by_o nature_n his_o amity_n with_o catholic_a prince_n his_o speech_n his_o proclamation_n which_o all_o tend_v at_o the_o beginning_n you_o say_v to_o peace_n and_o unity_n true_a indeed_o it_o be_v that_o his_o majesty_n by_o nature_n be_v dispose_v to_o mercy_n his_o amity_n with_o christian_a prince_n argue_v his_o charity_n and_o heroical_a ingenuity_n void_a of_o jealousy_n &_o suspicion_n even_o where_o occasion_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v give_v his_o speech_n and_o proclamation_n be_v not_o bloody_a yet_o all_o this_o can_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n as_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o endeavour_v a_o peace_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n no_o more_o than_o a_o league_n with_o the_o great_a turk_n for_o traffic_n shall_v give_v occasion_n of_o join_v with_o he_o in_o mahometisme_n but_o have_v you_o withal_o with_o the_o other_o eye_n reflect_v a_o little_a back_n upon_o his_o majesty_n education_n from_o his_o very_a cradle_n the_o choice_n of_o his_o alliance_n in_o marriage_n his_o counsel_n to_o his_o son_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o basilicon_fw-la doron_n his_o
exposition_n publish_v upon_o the_o 7._o 8._o 9_o and_o 10._o verse_n of_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o revel_v or_o last_o his_o subscription_n to_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n in_o the_o year_n 1581._o assoon_o as_o he_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n you_o will_v have_v have_v little_a reason_n to_o have_v presume_v so_o far_o upon_o he_o for_o harken_v to_o any_o peace_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ●●_o as_o long_o as_o her_o whoredom_n and_o witchcraft_n r●maine_n yet_o in_o such_o abundance_n and_o be_v offer_v cure_n ●hat_n we_o may_v know_v she_o be_v babylon_n she_o have_v and_o still_o do_v wilful_o 9_o refuse_v to_o be_v cure_v but_o the_o sandy_a ground_n of_o the_o vain_a presumption_n will_v yet_o more_o lively_o appear_v if_o the_o form_n of_o that_o subscription_n be_v well_o consider_v in_o which_o have_v rehearse_v and_o renounce_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o popery_n as_o namely_o the_o pope_n usurp_a authority_n over_o the_o scripture_n over_o the_o church_n over_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n his_o devilish_a mass_n his_o blasphemous_a priesthood_n his_o profane_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o erroneous_a and_o bloody_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n he_o promise_v and_o swear_v by_o the_o great_a name_n to_o the_o lord_n god_n to_o persevere_v in_o that_o faith_n and_o to_o defend_v it_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o his_o power_n under_o pain_n of_o all_o the_o curse_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o danger_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o fearful_a day_n of_o judgement_n and_o further_o straight_o charge_v and_o command_v all_o his_o officer_n and_o minister_n to_o make_v the_o same_o subscription_n themselves_o and_o to_o take_v it_o of_o other_o under_o their_o charge_n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o arrive_v to_o ripe_a age_n he_o alter_v his_o judgement_n in_o his_o instruction_n to_o his_o son_n he_o give_v we_o this_o assurance_n as_o for_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o religion_n say_v he_o i_o need_v not_o to_o dilate_v they_o i_o be_o no_o hypocrite_n follow_v my_o footstep_n and_o your_o own_o present_a education_n therein_o b._n c._n 10._o but_o when_o after_o my_o long_a hope_n i_o at_o the_o last_o do_v plain_o perceive_v that_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n have_v suffer_v the_o devil_n the_o athour_n of_o dissension_n so_o far_o to_o prevail_v as_o partly_o by_o the_o furious_a practice_n of_o some_o desperate_a catholic_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o practice_n fiery_a suggestion_n of_o all_o plot_n violent_a puritan_n he_o have_v realm_n quite_o divert_v that_o peaceable_a and_o temperate_a course_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o that_o i_o must_v now_o either_o alter_v my_o judgement_n which_o be_v impossible_a or_o preach_v against_o my_o conscience_n which_o be_v untolerable_a lord_n what_o anxiety_n and_o distraction_n of_o soul_n do_v i_o suffer_v day_n &_o night_n what_o strife_n betwixt_o my_o judgement_n which_o be_v whole_o for_o the_o q_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o my_o affection_n which_o be_v whole_o to_o enjoy_v the_o r_o favour_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o the_o love_n of_o my_o friend_n and_o country_n this_o grief_n of_o soul_n now_o grow_v desperate_a do_v still_o more_o and_o more_o increase_v the_o infirmity_n of_o my_o body_n and_o yet_o i_o be_v so_o loath_a to_o become_v a_o profess_a catholic_a with_o the_o displeasure_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o of_o all_o my_o honourable_a and_o love_a friend_n as_o i_o rather_o desire_v to_o silence_v my_o judgement_n with_o the_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v before_o i_o then_o to_o satisfy_v it_o with_o reconcile_n myself_o unto_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o it_o be_v god_n will_v that_o ever_o as_o i_o be_v about_o to_o forget_v the_o care_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o settle_v myself_o to_o the_o world_n among_o my_o neighbour_n i_o meet_v with_o such_o humour_n as_o i_o see_v by_o their_o violence_n against_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a religion_n be_v like_o rather_o to_o waken_v my_o soul_n by_o torture_n then_o bring_v it_o asleep_a by_o temper_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_v drive_v to_o s_o recoil_v to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o church_n that_o i_o may_v find_v rest_n unto_o my_o soul_n g._n h._n 10._o q_n certain_o for_o their_o sin_n it_o be_v that_o god_n suffer_v they_o to_o plot_n so_o barbarous_a a_o design_n but_o for_o our_o good_a we_o hope_v if_o in_o nothing_o else_o yet_o in_o work_v in_o we_o a_o strong_a hatred_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o produce_v such_o effect_n and_o in_o awaken_n we_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o like_a mischievous_a plot_n again_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o like_a may_v be_v plot_v we_o excuse_v not_o ourselves_o but_o in_o this_o business_n we_o have_v rather_o taste_v of_o god_n mercy_n which_o we_o deserve_v not_o then_o of_o his_o judgement_n which_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v we_o deserve_v r_o quis_fw-la tulerit_fw-la graccho_n deseditione_fw-la querentes_fw-la what_o patient_a ear_n can_v endure_v he_o talk_v of_o nothing_o but_o peace_n and_o unity_n who_o do_v ever_o blow_v the_o coal_n of_o dissension_n both_o in_o court_n and_o country_n as_o well_o in_o the_o college_n where_o he_o live_v a_o fellow_n as_o in_o the_o church_n where_o he_o be_v a_o canon_n s_o so_o it_o may_v well_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o your_o own_o word_n 22._o that_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o your_o grief_n be_v that_o you_o see_v your_o ambitious_a humour_n be_v now_o cross_v in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v not_o keep_v the_o old_a wont_a and_o withal_o rise_v to_o place_n of_o honour_n t_o your_o apostasy_n and_o forsake_v the_o faith_n and_o church_n in_o which_o you_o be_v baptize_v you_o call_v a_o recoil_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o church_n neither_o will_v i_o much_o stand_v upon_o it_o since_o we_o know_v that_o antichrist_n must_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n bear_v himself_o as_o god_n b._n c._n 11._o and_o yet_o because_o i_o have_v hear_v often_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v contrary_a to_o her_o doctrine_n i_o think_v good_a to_o make_v one_o trial_n more_o before_o i_o resolve_v and_o therefore_o have_v the_o advice_n of_o diverse_a learned_a physician_n to_o go_v to_o the_o spa_n for_o the_o health_n of_o my_o body_n i_o think_v good_a to_o make_v a_o virtue_n of_o necessity_n and_o to_o get_v leave_n to_o go_v the_o rather_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o my_o soul_n five_o hope_v to_o find_v some_o great_a offence_n in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o i_o have_v do_v in_o her_o book_n that_o so_o i_o may_v return_v better_o content_v and_o persecute_v and_o abhor_v the_o catholic_n at_o home_n after_o i_o shall_v find_v they_o so_o wicked_a and_o idolatrous_a abroad_o as_o they_o be_v in_o every_o pulpit_n in_o england_n affirm_v to_o be_v for_o this_o purpose_n before_o i_o will_v frequent_v their_o church_n i_o talk_v with_o such_o learned_a man_n as_o i_o can_v meet_v withal_o and_o do_v of_o purpose_n dispute_v against_o they_o and_o with_o all_o the_o antiquity_n wit_n and_o learning_n i_o have_v both_o justify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o law_n and_o object_v their_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n which_o i_o think_v they_o may_v commit_v either_o with_o the_o image_n in_o the_o church_n or_o with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n g._n h._n 11._o that_o be_v a_o truth_n to_o avouch_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v more_o gross_a than_o her_o doctrine_n howbeit_o we_o must_v confess_v her_o doctrine_n in_o many_o point_n to_o be_v very_o gross_a appear_v by_o this_o that_o the_o better_a and_o wise_a sort_n among_o themselves_o both_o in_o their_o judgement_n and_o write_n condemn_v many_o foppery_n usual_o practise_v by_o the_o people_n and_o wink_v at_o by_o their_o guide_n as_o their_o hallow_n of_o grain_n and_o medal_n and_o bead_n by_o touch_v some_o suppose_a relic_n with_o opinion_n of_o merit_n their_o pray_v to_o feign_a saint_n and_o believe_v forge_v legend_n and_o miracle_n their_o permit_v of_o public_a stew_n and_o a_o priest_n to_o keep_v his_o concubine_n under_o a_o yearly_a rent_n which_o espencaeus_fw-la wish_v be_v false_o thrust_v in_o among_o the_o grievance_n of_o germany_n their_o set_n of_o certain_a rate_n upon_o the_o most_o grievous_a sin_n before_o they_o be_v commit_v as_o appear_v in_o their_o taxa_fw-la camera_fw-la their_o allow_v of_o sanctuary_n for_o wilful_a murder_n their_o ordinary_a buy_n and_o sell_v of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n as_o a_o man_n will_v buy_v a_o horse_n in_o
smithfield_n last_o the_o make_n of_o ghost_n to_o walk_v and_o talk_v at_o their_o pleasure_n of_o image_n to_o move_v to_o weep_v to_o sweat_v to_o speak_v when_o they_o list_v be_v matter_n which_o the_o modest_a sort_n dare_v not_o defend_v and_o yet_o the_o most_o impudent_a can_v well_o deny_v and_o sure_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o must_v confess_v that_o nothing_o so_o much_o move_v i_o to_o a_o loathe_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o the_o behold_n of_o their_o practice_n their_o whole_a worship_n wherein_o we_o differ_v either_o consist_v in_o apish_a ridiculous_a gesture_n or_o in_o a_o mere_a outward_a formality_n or_o direct_v whole_o to_o the_o greatness_n and_o gain_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o english_a gentleman_n affirm_v that_o be_v induce_v by_o subtlety_n of_o argument_n to_o the_o entertain_v of_o some_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o sight_n of_o her_o whorish_a countenance_n and_o the_o licentious_a life_n of_o her_o chief_a prelate_n even_o in_o rome_n itself_o have_v wrought_v they_o to_o a_o distaste_n of_o it_o as_o suppose_v that_o a_o face_n so_o artificial_o paint_v and_o compose_v can_v not_o stand_v with_o simplicity_n of_o truth_n nor_o such_o lewdness_n in_o live_v with_o soundness_n in_o doctrine_n which_o adrian_n the_o vi_o by_o nation_n a_o netherlander_n one_o of_o the_o best_a pope_n of_o latter_a day_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o so_o much_o scandal_n in_o the_o world_n and_o so_o general_a and_o eager_a a_o desire_n of_o reformation_n as_o appear_v in_o his_o instruction_n to_o his_o nuntio_n to_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o state_n of_o germany_n assemble_v in_o diet_n and_o record_v by_o espencaeus_fw-la in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o first_o of_o titus_n and_o therefore_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o reformation_n of_o his_o own_o court_n as_o our_o saviour_n do_v with_o the_o temple_n but_o his_o disposition_n be_v discover_v and_o his_o intent_n know_v order_n be_v take_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o proceed_v in_o that_o business_n be_v short_o after_o cut_v off_o by_o untimely_a death_n so_o that_o if_o you_o have_v so_o please_v you_o may_v have_v find_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n much_o more_o gross_a than_o her_o doctrine_n aswell_o for_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o for_o the_o life_n of_o their_o clergy_n and_o religious_a man_n neither_o need_v you_o to_o have_v undertake_v a_o voyage_n to_o the_o spa_n for_o that_o purpose_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o have_v make_v or_o at_o least_o may_v have_v make_v trial_n thereof_o at_o your_o be_v in_o france_n with_o a_o honourable_a person_n employ_v thither_o by_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o last_o word_n of_o your_o section_n go_v before_o this_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o be_v drive_v to_o recoil_v to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n that_o you_o may_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o soul_n and_o here_o within_o 10._o line_n you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o get_v leave_v to_o travel_v beyond_o the_o sea_n hope_v to_o find_v some_o great_a offence_n in_o the_o service_n of_o that_o church_n than_o you_o have_v do_v in_o her_o book_n in_o her_o practice_n then_o in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o both_o your_o instance_n in_o the_o section_n follow_v and_o conference_n with_o learned_a man_n argue_v their_o doctrine_n rather_o than_o their_o practice_n b._n c._n 12._o their_o common_a answer_n be_v that_o which_o by_o experience_n i_o now_o find_v to_o be_v true_a viz._n that_o they_o do_v abhor_v all_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n and_o do_v diligent_o fall_n admonish_v the_o people_n to_o take_v heed_n thereof_o and_o they_o use_v image_n for_o none_o other_o purpose_n but_o only_o for_o a_o then_o devout_a memory_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a which_o be_v most_o fit_a to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o prayer_n where_o after_o a_o more_o special_a manner_n we_o shall_v with_o all_o reverence_n have_v earth_n our_o conversation_n among_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n g._n h._n 12._o it_o appear_v by_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o this_o answer_n that_o either_o your_o wit_n and_o learning_n be_v very_o slender_a to_o object_n have_v as_o it_o seem_v scarce_o look_v into_o late_a writer_n so_o much_o as_o to_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o question_n controverse_v between_o we_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o pretend_v before_o in_o your_o five_o section_n or_o else_o your_o will_n forestall_v by_o prejudice_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o receive_v satisfaction_n with_o any_o answer_n for_o what_o novice_n be_v there_o so_o mean_o study_v in_o controversy_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hitherto_o practise_v and_o still_o do_v profess_v that_o the_o use_n of_o image_n in_o their_o church_n be_v not_o only_o for_o memory_n and_o representation_n as_o you_o affirm_v but_o for_o worship_n and_o adoration_n and_o withal_o command_v her_o pastor_n in_o that_o catechism_n which_o they_o call_v the_o roman_a to_o teach_v the_o people_n so_o nay_o which_o be_v more_o they_o both_o give_v and_o maintain_v to_o be_v due_a the_o same_o adoration_n to_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o neither_o less_o nor_o more_o 65._o then_o be_v due_a unto_o christ_n himself_o which_o opinion_n as_o a_o moderate_a and_o judicious_a writer_n have_v well_o observe_v howsoeever_n they_o endeavour_n to_o varnish_v and_o qualify_v with_o distinction_n which_o the_o school_n in_o speculation_n have_v bolt_v out_o pretend_v that_o the_o cross_n which_o to_o outward_a sense_n present_v visible_o itself_o alone_o be_v not_o by_o they_o apprehend_v alone_o but_o have_v in_o their_o secret_a surmise_n or_o conceit_n a_o reference_n to_o the_o person_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o the_o honour_n which_o they_o joint_o do_v to_o both_o respect_v principal_o his_o person_n and_o the_o cross_n but_o only_o for_o his_o person_n sake_n yet_o the_o people_n not_o accustom_v to_o trouble_v their_o brain_n with_o so_o nice_a and_o subtle_a difference_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n be_v apparent_o no_o less_o ensnare_v by_o adore_v the_o cross_n than_o the_o jew_n by_o burn_a incense_n to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o in_o action_n of_o this_o kind_n we_o be_v more_o to_o respect_v what_o the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n be_v common_o prone_a to_o conceive_v than_o what_o some_o few_o man_n invention_n can_v devise_v in_o construction_n of_o their_o own_o particular_a meaning_n his_o majesty_n own_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v excellent_a and_o worthy_a observation_n but_o for_o worship_v either_o of_o they_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o relic_n or_o image_n i_o must_v account_v it_o damnable_a idolatry_n i_o be_o no_o iconomachus_n i_o quarrel_n not_o the_o make_n of_o image_n either_o for_o public_a decoration_n or_o man_n private_a use_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v worship_v and_o pray_v unto_o or_o any_o holiness_n attribute_v unto_o they_o be_v never_o know_v of_o the_o ancient_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o direct_o vehement_o and_o punctual_o against_o it_o as_o i_o wonder_v what_o brain_n of_o man_n or_o suggestion_n of_o satan_n dare_v offer_v it_o to_o christian_n and_o all_o must_v be_v salve_v with_o nice_a philosophical_a distinction_n as_o idolum_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la and_o they_o worship_v forsooth_o the_o image_n of_o thing_n in_o be_v and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o true_a god_n but_o the_o scripture_n forbid_v to_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o god_n create_v it_o be_v not_o a_o nihil_fw-la then_o that_o god_n forbid_v only_a shall_v be_v worship_v neither_o be_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n nor_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n a_o nihil_fw-la and_o yet_o the_o one_o be_v destroy_v and_o the_o other_o hide_a for_o eschew_v of_o idolatry_n yea_o the_o image_n of_o god_n himself_o be_v not_o only_o express_o forbid_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o even_o to_o be_v make_v the_o reason_n be_v give_v that_o no_o eye_n ever_o see_v god_n and_o how_o can_v we_o paint_v his_o face_n when_o moses_n the_o man_n that_o ever_o be_v most_o familiar_a with_o god_n never_o see_v but_o his_o back_n part_n sure_o since_o he_o can_v be_v draw_v to_o the_o view_n it_o be_v a_o thankless_a labour_n to_o mar_v it_o with_o a_o false_a representation_n which_o no_o prince_n nor_o scarce_o any_o other_o man_n will_v be_v content_v with_o in_o their_o own_o picture_n let_v they_o therefore_o that_o maintain_v this_o doctrine_n answer_v it_o to_o christ_n at_o the_o latter_a day_n when_o he_o shall_v accuse_v they_o of_o idolatry_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v if_o he_o will_v be_v pay_v with_o such_o nice_a sophistical_a distinction_n hitherto_o his_o majesty_n than_o which_o i_o see_v not_o what_o can_v
and_o more_o than_o must_v be_v grant_v by_o we_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o deposition_n of_o prince_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o the_o disposition_n of_o their_o crown_n when_o his_o holiness_n shall_v judge_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o appear_v in_o his_o bull_n both_o against_o king_n henry_n the_o father_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o daughter_n and_o thus_o far_o cardinal_n perron_n that_o peaceable_a man_n and_o your_o great_a patron_n express_v himself_o in_o the_o last_o assembly_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n of_o france_n for_o which_o the_o pope_n give_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o stick_v to_o he_o in_o that_o business_n as_o great_a thanks_n as_o if_o they_o have_v save_v saint_n peter_n ship_n from_o sink_v both_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o pope_n suppose_v as_o it_o seem_v that_o those_o spark_n fly_v into_o france_n from_o the_o fire_n of_o england_n howsoever_o sure_o it_o be_v they_o be_v quench_v by_o the_o water_n of_o tiber_n b._n c._n 15._o so_o that_o whereas_o my_o before_o hope_n be_v that_o by_o find_v out_o the_o many_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o shall_v grow_v further_o in_o love_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o joyful_o return_v home_o and_o by_o inveigh_v against_o the_o papist_n both_o enjoy_v my_o present_a preferment_n and_o obtain_v more_o and_o more_o i_o see_v the_o matte●_n be_v like_a to_o fall_v out_o clean_a contrary_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o there_o be_v many_o corruptions●_n in_o all_o state_n god_n have_v not_o his_o wheat_n field_n in_o this_o world_n wherein_o the_o devil_n have_v no_o tare_n grow_v and_o there_o be_v not_o tare_n abound_v more_o rank_n than_o those_o that_o grow_v among_o the_o wheat_n for_o optimi_fw-la corruptio_fw-la pessima_fw-la and_o where_o grace_n abound_v if_o it_o be_v contemn_v there_o sin_n abound_v much_o more_o but_o see_v my_o read_n and_o experience_n have_v now_o teach_v i_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n teach_v and_o practise_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o obedient_a member_n thereof_o be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o circumstance_n substance_n which_o be_v prefigure_v and_o prophesy_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n perfect_v by_o christ_n himself_o deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n perpetual_o and_o universal_o practise_v until_o this_o day_n without_o any_o w_o substantial_a alteration_n and_o that_o the_o new_a religion_n in_o x_o england_n wherein_o it_o do_v differ_v have_v no_o ground_n but_o either_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o parliament_n or_o the_o common_a cry_n and_o voice_n of_o the_o people_n nor_o no_o constancy_n or_o agreement_n with_o itself_o what_o shall_v i_o now_o do_v it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n not_o to_o know_v that_o which_o i_o do_v know_v nor_o to_o doubt_v of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o time_n and_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n and_o bestow_v so_o much_o cost_n and_o make_v so_o many_o trial_n to_o find_v and_o i_o know_v if_o i_o shall_v yield_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n i_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o world_n in_o all_o likelihood_n pe●●on_n utter_o undo_v and_o which_o grieve_v i_o more_o i_o shall_v be_v reject_v of_o your_o majesty_n my_o most_o redoubt_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o despise_v by_o all_o my_o dear_a friend_n and_o lover_n in_o england_n g._n h._n 15._o w_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v indeed_o the_o substance_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o profession_n but_o yet_o by_o consequence_n shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o as_o it_o hold_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v satisfactory_a for_o sin_n and_o yet_o add_v thereunto_o her_o own_o meritorious_a satisfaction_n consequent_o by_o the_o latter_a she_o overthrow_v the_o former_a for_o 21._o if_o righteousness_n be_v by_o the_o law_n than_o christ_n die_v without_o a_o cause_n and_o in_o reason_n impossible_a it_o be_v if_o tradition_n be_v hold_v of_o equal_a value_n with_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o constitute_n of_o substantial_a point_n but_o that_o in_o short_a time_n there_o shall_v ensue_v a_o substantial_a alteration_n and_o he_o that_o know_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v many_o thing_n now_o as_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o it_o held_n not_o in_o former_a age_n know_v little_a what_o have_v be_v ancient_o hold_v or_o now_o be_v x_o if_o by_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n you_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v by_o law_n establish_v as_o in_o common_a construction_n you_o can_v otherwise_o be_v understand_v you_o condemn_v yourself_o out_o of_o your_o own_o mouth_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o acknowledge_v before_o that_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o law_n in_o england_n be_v the_o same_o save_o only_o it_o be_v somewhat_o defective_a which_o now_o be_v and_o ever_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o yet_o here_o you_o say_v it_o have_v no_o ground_n but_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o parliament_n whereas_o in_o truth_n we_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o upon_o the_o sand_n of_o tradition_n and_o which_o of_o we_o have_v the_o sound_a foundation_n i_o appeal_v no_o far_o than_o reason_n itself_o to_o judge_v you_o as_o though_o you_o be_v not_o yet_o 22_o dead_a from_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o world_n burden_n yourselves_o with_o tradition_n as_o touch_v not_o taste_v not_o handle_v not_o which_o all_o perish_v with_o the_o use_n and_o be_v after_o the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n but_o we_o have_v a_o most_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n take_v heed_n thereto_o according_o to_o s._n peter_n counsel_n 19_o as_o to_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n and_o as_o our_o ground_n be_v sure_a so_o be_v our_o agreement_n constant_a and_o uniform_a in_o all_o point_v material_a and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n whereas_o in_o the_o build_n of_o your_o tower_n of_o babel_n such_o diversity_n of_o language_n be_v hear_v that_o there_o be_v hardly_o any_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n or_o point_n in_o controversy_n which_o have_v not_o be_v or_o be_v call_v into_o question_n either_o direct_o or_o by_o consequent_a by_o some_o that_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o church_n which_o you_o call_v catholic_a as_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o he_o who_o shall_v turn_v over_o the_o volume_n of_o of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n which_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n as_o i_o suppose_v that_o his_o work_n be_v not_o allow_v to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o but_o of_o public_a professor_n and_o such_o other_o as_o have_v special_a permission_n from_o their_o superior_n b._n c._n 16._o these_o be_v my_o thought_n at_o the_o spa_n which_o do_v so_o vex_v and_o salvation_n afflict_v my_o soul_n as_o that_o the_o water_n can_v do_v my_o body_n no_o good_a at_o all_o but_o rather_o much_o hurt_n nevertheless_o i_o church_n avoid_v the_o company_n of_o catholic_n abstain_v from_o the_o church_n and_o do_v both_o dispute_n and_o write_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v i_o still_o hope_v that_o time_n will_v give_v better_a counsel_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v to_o go_v from_o the_o spa_n to_o heidelberge_n to_o do_v my_o duty_n there_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o think_v with_o myself_o it_o may_v be_v god_n have_v move_v his_o majesty_n heart_n to_o church_n peace_n and_o reconciliation_n i_o know_v his_o disposition_n be_v so_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o i_o remember_v m._n casaubon_n tell_v i_o when_o i_o france_n bring_v he_o out_o of_o france_n that_o his_o errand_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o mediate_v peace_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n therefore_o i_o think_v before_o i_o will_v submit_v myself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v write_v unto_o m._n casaubon_n such_o a_o letter_n as_o he_o may_v show_v unto_o your_o majesty_n contain_v such_o condition_n as_o i_o think_v may_v satisfy_v your_o majesty_n if_o they_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o copy_n of_o which_o letter_n be_v too_o long_o here_o to_o set_v down_o but_o when_o m._n casaubon_n answer_v i_o that_o he_o know_v your_o majesty_n be_v church_n resolve_v to_o have_v no_o society_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o any_o condition_n what_o soever_o and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v my_o undo_n if_o those_o my_o letter_n shall_v come_v to_o your_o majesty_n hand_n or_o of_o those_o that_o bear_v the_o sway_n i_o begin_v to_o despair_v of_o my_o return_n into_o england_n unless_o i_o will_v overthrow_v both_o the_o health_n of_o my_o body_n and_o the_o quiet_a of_o my_o
refer_v this_o matrimonial_a cause_n to_o the_o hear_n and_o determine_v of_o his_o legate_n but_o give_v campeius_n a_o secret_a bull_n in_o his_o bosom_n as_o witness_v 3_o francis_n guicciardin_n in_o the_o 19_o book_n of_o his_o history_n a_o catholic_a in_o his_o profession_n no_o man_n more_o a_o reporter_n of_o thing_n he_o see_v no_o man_n true_a and_o a_o creature_n of_o the_o pope_n employ_v in_o honourable_a charge_n the_o copy_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o 200._o anti-sander_n date_v in_o the_o year_n 1527._o the_o 17_o of_o december_n and_o the_o five_o year_n of_o clement_n the_o sevenths_n popedom_n wherein_o he_o infringe_v the_o former_a 8._o dispensation_n affirm_v that_o the_o king_n can_v not_o continue_v in_o such_o matrimony_n without_o sin_n whereupon_o he_o decree_v that_o after_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o nullity_n of_o the_o former_a marriage_n and_o the_o king_n absolution_n it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o marry_v another_o this_o bull_n he_o forbid_v he_o to_o show_v to_o any_o save_v only_o to_o the_o king_n and_o cardinal_n wolsey_n his_o fellow_n commissioner_n in_o that_o business_n and_o though_o open_o he_o command_v he_o to_o handle_v the_o cause_n with_o all_o expedition_n yet_o secret_o he_o will_v he_o to_o protract_v the_o time_n promise_v that_o himself_o will_v watch_v a_o opportunity_n to_o publish_v the_o decree_n so_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n be_v cite_v to_o appear_v before_o they_o in_o may_n follow_v at_o which_o time_n after_o some_o debate_n of_o the_o cause_n they_o protract_v the_o sentence_n till_o the_o beginning_n of_o august_n and_o after_o many_o delay_n find_v that_o king_n henry_n can_v not_o by_o hope_n of_o the_o divorce_n be_v draw_v to_o side_n with_o the_o french_a the_o pope_n command_v campeius_n to_o burn_v his_o bull_n and_o to_o return_v home_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o king_n henry_n may_v easy_o have_v have_v the_o nullity_n of_o his_o marriage_n with_o queen_n katherine_n ratify_v at_o rome_n without_o take_v the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n if_o he_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o the_o pope_n condition_n but_o the_o lord_n you_o say_v and_o commons_o will_v never_o have_v suffer_v such_o a_o statute_n to_o be_v make_v have_v not_o that_o title_n enable_v the_o king_n to_o pull_v down_o abbey_n and_o religious_a house_n and_o give_v they_o to_o lay_v man_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v then_o what_o move_v the_o bishop_n to_o give_v way_n to_o it_o who_o have_v no_o share_n in_o that_o division_n yet_o have_v they_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n pass_v it_o in_o convocation_n before_o it_o be_v so_o much_o as_o propose_v in_o parliament_n and_o for_o the_o commons_o a_o very_a little_a share_n fall_v out_o to_o their_o part_n and_o if_o ●he_v assume_v of_o that_o title_n be_v indeed_o so_o needful_a as_o you_o pretend_v for_o the_o supress_n of_o those_o house_n by_o what_o authority_n do_v cardinal_n wolsey_n dissolve_v some_o and_o the_o king_n by_o his_o example_n more_o before_o that_o title_n be_v by_o he_o public_o assume_v now_o for_o queen_n elizabeth_n it_o be_v true_a that_o she_o revive_v those_o statute_n of_o supremacy_n enact_v by_o her_o father_n and_o repeal_v by_o her_o sister_n but_o not_o without_o diverse_a exception_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o book_n in_o so_o much_o as_o a_o new_a form_n of_o oath_n be_v establish_v by_o she_o which_o be_v the_o oath_n at_o this_o day_n in_o force_n the_o refusal_n of_o which_o upon_o a_o second_o offer_v by_o such_o as_o stand_v convict_v of_o a_o former_a refusal_n be_v by_o the_o statute_n of_o 5_o eliz._n cap._n 1._o make_v high_a treason_n and_o it_o be_v none_o otherwise_o nay_o further_o by_o a_o express_a proviso_n in_o that_o statute_n none_o be_v compellable_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n the_o second_o time_n but_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o some_o few_o other_o especial_o name_v in_o that_o statute_n neither_o do_v she_o take_v to_o she_o in_o that_o or_o any_o other_o statute_n the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n but_o of_o governor_n by_o which_o what_o she_o understand_v herself_o express_v in_o her_o injunction_n and_o her_o clergy_n in_o their_o 37._o article_n confirm_v 1571._o in_o two_o several_a convocation_n where_o they_o thus_o speak_v where_o we_o attribute_v to_o the_o queen_n majesty_n the_o chief_a government_n by_o which_o title_n we_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o some_o slanderous_a folk_n to_o be_v offend_v we_o give_v not_o to_o our_o prince_n the_o minister_a either_o of_o god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o thing_n the_o injunction_n also_o late_o set_v forth_o by_o elizabeth_n our_o queen_n do_v most_o plain_o testify_v but_o that_o only_a prerogative_n which_o we_o see_v to_o have_v be_v give_v always_o to_o all_o godly_a prince_n in_o holy_a scripture_n by_o god_n himself_o that_o be_v th●t_v they_o shall_v rule_v all_o estate_n and_o degree_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a and_o restrain_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n the_o stubborn_a and_o evil_a doer_n neither_o do_v i_o see_v how_o osorius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o she_o can_v be_v interpret_v to_o afford_v she_o less_o where_o he_o profess_v that_o all_o king_n be_v pro_fw-la parte_fw-la suaiuris_fw-la divini_fw-la vicarij_fw-la vicar_n of_o god_n law_n in_o their_o place_n from_o queen_n elizabeth_n you_o pass_v to_o his_o majesty_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o confirm_v the_o same_o statute_n to_o satisfy_v other_o man_n argue_v therein_o his_o majesty_n of_o great_a weakness_n either_o as_o be_v not_o able_a to_o judge_v what_o he_o do_v or_o as_o be_v carry_v by_o other_o against_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o that_o his_o majesty_n do_v it_o advise_o and_o rather_o to_o satisfy_v himselve_n than_o other_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o he_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o same_o power_n which_o that_o statute_n give_v he_o before_o his_o receive_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o since_o himself_o with_o his_o own_o pen_n have_v thus_o both_o justify_v and_o 108._o explain_v it_o if_o these_o example_n say_v he_o sentence_n title_n and_o prerogative_n and_o innumerable_a other_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o warrant_v christian_a king_n within_o their_o own_o dominion_n to_o govern_v their_o church_n aswell_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o people_n in_o be_v custodes_fw-la utriusque_fw-la tabulae_fw-la not_o by_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n office_n as_o i_o say_v before_o but_o by_o command_v obedience_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o reform_v the_o religion_n accord_v to_o his_o prescribe_a will_n by_o assist_v the_o spiritual_a power_n with_o the_o temporal_a sword_n by_o reform_v of_o corruption_n by_o procure_v due_a obedience_n to_o the_o church_n by_o judge_v and_o cut_v off_o all_o frivolous_a question_n and_o schism_n as_o constant●i_fw-la constantine_n do_v and_o final_o by_o make_v decorum_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o every_o thing_n and_o establish_v order_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o indifferent_a thing_n for_o that_o purpose_n which_o be_v the_o only_a intent_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n if_o this_o office_n of_o a_o king_n i_o say_v do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o power_n give_v he_o by_o god_n word_n l●t_v any_o indifferent_a man_n void_a of_o passion_n judge_n but_o yet_o his_o majesty_n you_o say_v yield_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n church_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a bishop_n or_o primate_n of_o the_o western_a church_n indeed_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o first_o speech_n in_o his_o first_o parliament_n call_v after_o his_o entrance_n to_o this_o kingdom_n be_v please_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v our_o mother_n church_n this_o m._n doctor_n be_v content_a to_o urge_v but_o to_o conceal_v that_o which_o he_o add_v defile_a with_o infirmity_n and_o corruption_n as_o the_o jew_n be_v when_o they_o crucify_v christ_n and_o as_o i_o be_o none_o enemy_n say_v he_o to_o the_o life_n of_o a_o sick_a man_n because_o i_o will_v have_v his_o body_n purge_v of_o ill_a humour_n no_o more_o be_o i_o a_o enemy_n to_o their_o church_n because_o i_o will_v have_v they_o reform_v their_o error_n not_o wish_v their_o throw_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v purge_v and_o cleanse_v from_o corruption_n otherwise_o how_o can_v they_o wish_v we_o to_o enter_v if_o their_o house_n be_v not_o first_o make_v clean_o herein_o mr_n doctor_n deal_v with_o his_o majesty_n as_o the_o devil_n do_v with_o our_o saviour_n he_o press_v that_o out_o of_o the_o psalm_n which_o make_v for_o himself_o 11._o he_o will_v give_v
prejudice_n of_o any_o be_v honest_a man_n in_o england_n to_o see_v some_o unity_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o her_o mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o now_o have_v declare_v the_o mean_n of_o my_o coversion_n to_o catholic_a religion_n i_o will_v brief_o also_o show_v unto_o you_o the_o hope_n i_o have_v to_o do_v your_o majesty_n no_o ill_a service_n therein_o g._n h._n 21._o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o those_o statute_n which_o you_o allege_v be_v not_o several_a in_o themselves_o but_o member_n of_o the_o same_o and_o it_o appear_v well_o though_o you_o have_v not_o profess_v it_o that_o at_o the_o write_n hereof_o you_o have_v not_o your_o book_n about_o you_o you_o affirm_v thing_n uncertain_a so_o confident_o and_o thing_n certain_a so_o false_o but_o you_o be_v sure_a you_o say_v they_o make_v such_o felony_n and_o treason_n as_o be_v the_o great_a virtue_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n whereas_o we_o be_v more_o sure_a that_o the_o great_a virtue_n and_o fat_a sacrifice_n and_o short_a cut_n to_o heaven_n as_o they_o be_v now_o esteem_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o primiti●e_a church_n hold_v none_o other_o but_o murder_n and_o parricide_n and_o felony_n and_o treason_n thou_o do_v promise_v say_v 92_o augustine_n to_o patilian_n that_o thou_o will_v reckon_v many_o of_o the_o emperor_n and_o judge_n which_o by_o persecute_v you_o perish_v and_o conceal_v the_o emperor_n thou_o meane_v two_o judge_n or_o deputy_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o name_v the_o emperor_n of_o thy_o communion_n be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o be_v accuse_v as_o guilty_a of_o treason_n where_o be_v your_o courage_n which_o fear_v not_o to_o kill_v yourselves_o to_o say_v the_o emperor_n perish_v for_o persecute_v be_v treason_n in_o his_o time_n in_o our_o age_n you_o think_v it_o much_o that_o reproach_v of_o prince_n as_o tyrant_n and_o heretic_n and_o aid_v the_o pope_n with_o your_o persuasion_n absolution_n and_o rebellion_n to_o take_v their_o crown_n from_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v or_o adjudge_v treason_n how_o beit_a a_o certain_a truth_n it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o conspiracy_n so_o pernicious_a and_o dangerous_a to_o the_o state_n as_o that_o which_o be_v whisper_v into_o man_n ear_n and_o convey_v into_o their_o heart_n upon_o a_o sense_n of_o devotion_n and_o outward_o cover_v with_o a_o show_n of_o religion_n notwithstanding_o as_o true_a it_o be_v that_o in_o england_n none_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o catholic_a religion_n no_o nor_o for_o the_o romish_a which_o you_o call_v catholic_a as_o have_v be_v at_o large_a justify_v in_o a_o book_n write_v by_o a_o strengthen_v peer_n of_o the_o realm_n entitle_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o england_n and_o be_v verify_v by_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n in_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o pope_n first_o breve_fw-la where_o he_o not_o only_o clear_v himself_o at_o large_a from_o this_o imputation_n but_o the_o late_a queen_n that_o bless_a defunct_a lady_n as_o he_o there_o call_v she_o in_o who_o proceed_n say_v he_o who_o list_v to_o compare_v with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n the_o manifold_a intend_a invasion_n against_o her_o whole_a kingdom_n the_o foreign_a practice_n the_o internal_a public_a rebellion_n the_o private_a plot_n and_o machination_n poison_n murder_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o device_n daily_o set_v abroach_o and_o all_o these_o ware_n continual_o foster_v and_o foment_v from_o rome_n together_o with_o the_o continual_a corrupt_v of_o her_o subject_n aswell_o by_o temporal_a bribe_n as_o by_o fair_a and_o spacious_a promise_n of_o eternal_a felicity_n and_o nothing_o but_o book_n upon_o book_n public_o set_v forth_o by_o her_o fugitive_n for_o approbation_n of_o so_o holy_a design_n who_o list_v i_o say_v with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n to_o look_v on_o the_o one_o part_n upon_o these_o infinite_a and_o intolerable_a temptation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n upon_o the_o just_a yet_o moderate_a punishment_n of_o a_o part_n of_o these_o heinous_a offender_n shall_v easy_o see_v that_o that_o bless_a defunct_a lady_n be_v as_o free_v from_o persecution_n as_o th●y_o shall_v free_v these_o hellish_a instrument_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o martyrdom_n and_n against_o his_o majesty_n maintain_v the_o same_o in_o his_o premonition_n to_o christian_a prince_n not_o far_o from_o the_o conclusion_n as_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o punishment_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o romish_a catholic_n i_o do_v constant_o maintain_v that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o my_o apology_n that_o no_o man_n either_o in_o my_o time_n or_o the_o late_a queen_n ever_o die_v here_o for_o his_o conscience_n for_o let_v he_o be_v never_o so_o devout_a a_o papist_n nay_o though_o he_o profess_v the_o same_o never_o so_o constant_o his_o life_n be_v in_o no_o danger_n by_o the_o law_n if_o he_o break_v not_o out_o into_o some_o outward_a act_n express_o against_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n or_o plot_v some_o unlawful_a or_o dangerous_a practice_n or_o attempt_v priest_n and_o popish_a churchman_n only_o except_v that_o receive_v order_n beyond_o the_o sea_n who_o for_o the_o manifold_a treasonable_a practice_n that_o they_o have_v kindle_v and_o plot_v in_o this_o country_n be_v discharge_v to_o come_v home_o again_o under_o pain_n of_o treason_n after_o their_o receive_n of_o the_o say_a order_n abroad_o and_o yet_o without_o some_o other_o guilt_n in_o they_o then_o their_o bare_a home_n come_v have_v none_o of_o they_o be_v ever_o put_v to_o death_n hitherto_o his_o majesty_n 113._o whereas_o on_o the_o otherside_n we_o just_o complain_v that_o they_o execute_v our_o professor_n though_o stranger_n for_o religion_n and_o only_o for_o religion_n and_o in_o that_o most_o bloody_a and_o barbarous_a manner_n special_o where_o the_o inquisition_n be_v in_o force_n that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n be_v drink_v and_o yet_o not_o fill_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o whereas_o you_o impute_v cruelty_n to_o our_o law_n what_o tragical_a cruelty_n be_v exercise_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n even_o upon_o woman_n and_o child_n nay_o which_o be_v most_o odious_a and_o unnatural_a upon_o woman_n great_a with_o child_n i_o pray_v god_n as_o well_o forget_v as_o some_o yet_o alive_a well_o remember_v now_o as_o you_o hold_v and_o handle_v our_o martyr_n worse_o than_o traitor_n so_o your_o most_o notorious_a traitor_n must_v stand_v register_v in_o the_o calendar_n of_o martyr_n not_o many_o day_n before_o garnet_n suffer_v there_o come_v to_o visit_v he_o at_o his_o lodging_n in_o the_o tower_n certain_a choice_n divine_n among_o who_o the_o chief_a be_v my_o lord_n the_o bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n of_o lincoln_n and_o leichfield_n as_o now_o they_o be_v among_o other_o question_n one_o of_o they_o propose_v this_o whether_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n af●er_v his_o execution_n shall_v declare_v he_o a_o martyr_n he_o do_v approve_v thereof_o he_o deep_o sigh_v and_o shrink_v up_o his_o shoulder_n make_v this_o answer_n me_n a_o martyr_n o_o what_o a_o martyr_n but_o the_o church_n will_v n●uer_o do_v it_o and_o i_o pray_v god_n it_o be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o think_v upon_o indeed_o if_o i_o have_v die_v for_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o unhappy_a man_n have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v i_o in_o confession_n i_o may_v perhaps_o seem_v not_o unworthy_a the_o honour_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o merit_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o now_o as_o the_o case_n stand_v i_o must_v acknowledge_v my_o fault_n and_o confess_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n pronounce_v against_o i_o most_o just_a then_o again_o double_v and_o treble_v his_o sigh_n and_o show_v token_n of_o unfeigned_a sorrow_n i_o will_v to_o god_n say_v he_o what_o be_v do_v may_v be_v undo_v i_o can_v wish_v that_o any_o other_o chance_n have_v befall_v i_o rather_o than_o my_o name_n shall_v thus_o be_v stain_v with_o the_o blot_n of_o treason_n which_o offence_n though_o most_o grievous_a yet_o i_o distrust_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v wash_v away_o with_o the_o tear_n of_o repentance_n and_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v mercy_n on_o i_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o if_o i_o have_v all_o the_o world_n in_o my_o power_n to_o bestow_v i_o will_v willing_o give_v all_o that_o i_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o imputation_n of_o treason_n which_o lie_v heavy_a upon_o my_o conscience_n &_o shall_v stand_v record_v in_o the_o sentence_n of_o my_o condemnation_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o be_v he_o record_v a_o martyr_n apologize_v by_o eudemon_n and_o by_o delrio_n paralel_v with_o denis_n the_o areopagite_n what_o will_v mr._n doctor_n say_v to_o this_o now_o have_v we_o
my_o kingdom_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o which_o all_o point_n of_o religion_n be_v superfluous_a as_o any_o thing_n contrary_n to_o the_o same_o be_v abomination_n i_o have_v never_o outward_o avow_a it_o for_o pleasure_n or_o awe_n of_o any_o flesh_n i_o take_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v either_o for_o love_n or_o fear_v of_o any_o mortal_a man_n or_o rather_o for_o any_o worldly_a and_o fleshly_a consideration_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o gain_v and_o make_v advantage_n by_o entertain_v and_o embrace_v it_o or_o to_o loose_v and_o suffer_v disadvantage_n by_o reject_v and_o oppose_v the_o contrary_a i_o speak_v not_o this_o as_o if_o by_o god_n grace_n as_o much_o and_o more_o both_o honour_n and_o security_n do_v not_o wait_v upon_o our_o religion_n as_o upon_o the_o romish_a but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o these_o be_v no_o sufficient_a inducement_n to_o draw_v so_o much_o as_o a_o private_a man_n much_o less_o to_o move_v the_o divine_a and_o noble_a spirit_n of_o a_o christian_a prince_n special_o such_o a_o prince_n as_o have_v often_o show_v himself_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o reason_n of_o a_o high_a strain_n to_o the_o accept_n of_o a_o new_a belief_n and_o another_o form_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o only_o the_o plain_a demonstration_n and_o clear_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o belief_n and_o necessity_n of_o that_o form_n b._n c._n 3._o the_o first_o reason_n of_o my_o hope_n be_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n himself_o to_o bless_v and_o honour_v those_o that_o bless_v work_v his_o church_n and_o honour_v he_o and_o to_o curse_v and_o confound_v those_o that_o curse_v his_o church_n and_o dishonour_v he_o which_o he_o have_v make_v good_a in_o all_o age_n there_o be_v never_o any_o man_n or_o city_n or_o state_n or_o empire_n so_o preserve_v and_o advance_v as_o they_o that_o have_v preserve_v the_o unity_n and_o advance_v the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n nor_o any_o be_v make_v more_o miserable_a and_o inglorious_a than_o they_o that_o have_v dishonour_v christ_n and_o make_v havoc_n of_o his_o church_n by_o schism_n and_o heresy_n g._n h._n 3._o to_o grant_v that_o which_o you_o assume_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n this_o argument_n draw_v from_o temporal_a blessing_n be_v sometime_o false_a uncertain_a always_o and_o your_o assertion_n that_o never_o any_o man_n or_o city_n or_o state_n be_v preserve_v &_o advance_v as_o they_o that_o have_v preserve_v the_o unity_n and_o advance_v the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v very_o broad_a and_o too_o large_a consider_v it_o extend_v even_o to_o solomon_n himself_o who_o though_o he_o advance_v the_o church_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o proper_o be_v say_v that_o he_o advance_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n nay_o out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v ever_o more_o prosperous_a &_o successful_a in_o their_o affair_n than_o augustus_n and_o trajan_n of_o the_o former_a of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o find_v rome_n of_o brick_n and_o leave_v it_o of_o marble_n of_o the_o late_a that_o he_o raise_v the_o roman_a empire_n to_o the_o high_a pitch_n of_o glory_n and_o spread_v the_o power_n of_o their_o command_n unto_o the_o far_a border_n and_o large_a circuit_n that_o ever_o before_o or_o since_o have_v by_o they_o be_v possess_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o dacia_n he_o subdue_v armenia_n parthia_n and_o mesopotamia_n make_v subject_a assyria_n persia_n and_o babylon_n conquer_v pass_v tigris_n and_o stretch_v the_o confine_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n unto_o the_o remote_a dominion_n of_o the_o indies_n which_o never_o before_o that_o time_n have_v see_v the_o roman_a banner_n or_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o their_o name_n beside_o his_o moral_a virtue_n be_v such_o that_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o a_o new_a emperor_n they_o ever_o wish_v for_o one_o more_o happy_a than_o augustus_n better_a than_o trajan_n and_o yet_o this_o man_n with_o who_o for_o outward_a prosperity_n no_o christian_a emperor_n can_v be_v balance_v be_v not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o a_o enemy_n to_o it_o &_o raise_v against_o it_o the_o three_o and_o one_o of_o the_o hot_a persecution_n of_o the_o ten_o for_o further_a proof_n hereof_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n for_o this_o point_n to_o s._n augustine_n first_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o sure_o he_o that_o shall_v due_o consider_v the_o flourish_a greatness_n of_o the_o assy_a rian_n and_o grecian_a but_o especial_o the_o imp._n roman_a monarchy_n will_v easy_o discover_v the_o lightness_n of_o this_o reason_n and_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o assertion_n i_o speak_v not_o to_o detract_v from_o the_o christian_a and_o true_o catholic_a religion_n even_o in_o regard_n of_o outward_a blessing_n but_o only_o to_o prove_v that_o god_n bestow_v they_o sometime_o upon_o the_o good_a thereby_o to_o show_v that_o absolute_o and_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v not_o bad_a sometime_o again_o upon_o the_o bad_a to_o show_v that_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v not_o good_a and_o take_v they_o sometime_o from_o both_o to_o show_v that_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v indifferent_a b._n c._n 4._o if_o i_o have_v leisure_n and_o book_n it_o be_v easy_a for_o i_o to_o enlarge_v this_o point_n with_o a_o long_a enumeration_n of_o particular_n but_o i_o think_v it_o needless_a because_o i_o can_v call_v to_o mind_v any_o example_n to_o the_o contrary_a except_o it_o be_v the_o state_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n or_o some_o one_o or_o two_o other_o late_o fall_v from_o the_o church_n unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o the_o state_n of_o the_o great_a turk_n that_o do_v still_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o continue_v in_o great_a glory_n in_o this_o world_n but_o when_o i_o consider_v of_o queen_n elizabeth_n i_o find_v in_o she_o many_o singularity_n she_o be_v a_o woman_n and_o a_o lie_v maiden_n queen_n which_o give_v she_o many_o advantage_n of_o admiration_n she_o be_v the_o last_o of_o her_o race_n and_o need_v not_o care_n what_o become_v of_o the_o world_n after_o her_o day_n be_v end_v she_o come_v upon_o the_o happy_a remainder_n of_o devotion_n and_o catholic_a religion_n which_o like_o a_o bowl_n in_o his_o course_n or_o a_o arrow_n in_o his_o flight_n will_v go_v on_o for_o a_o while_n by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o first_o mover_n and_o she_o have_v a_o practice_n of_o power_n maintain_v war_n among_o her_o neighbour_n which_o become_v a_o woman_n well_o that_o she_o may_v be_v quiet_a at_o home_n and_o whatsoever_o prosperity_n or_o honour_n there_o be_v in_o her_o day_n or_o be_v yet_o remain_v in_o england_n i_o can_v not_o but_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o catholic_a religion_n which_o be_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o the_o first_o mover_n of_o that_o government_n and_o it_o be_v still_o in_o every_o settle_a kingdom_n and_o have_v leave_v the_o step_n and_o shadow_n thereof_o behind_o it_o which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n can_v continue_v many_o year_n without_o a_o new_a be_v supplier_fw-fr from_o the_o fountain_n g._n h._n 4._o why_o you_o shall_v join_v queen_n elizabeth_n with_o the_o great_a turk_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n but_o only_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o rainolds_n his_o book_n of_o caluino_n turkism_n otherwise_o a_o marvel_v it_o be_v that_o you_o will_v instance_n in_o her_o happiness_n who_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o brief_n declare_v amiserable_a woman_n and_o yet_o her_o government_n be_v not_o more_o happy_a than_o her_o sister_n who_o notwithstanding_o she_o submit_v her_o neck_n to_o the_o roman_a yoke_n be_v unfortunate_a howbeit_o in_o her_o own_o disposition_n she_o be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v a_o gracious_a and_o virtuous_a lady_n instance_n may_v be_v bring_v in_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o a_o foreigner_n the_o frustrate_v of_o the_o great_a hope_n of_o her_o conception_n her_o short_a and_o bloody_a reign_n extraordinary_a dearth_n and_o hurt_v by_o thunder_n and_o fire_n and_o last_o the_o loss_n of_o calis_n the_o last_o foot_n we_o have_v in_o france_n be_v hold_v by_o her_o predecessor_n the_o space_n of_o about_o 250_o year_n whereas_o queen_n elizabeth_n oppugn_v and_o accurse_a from_o her_o very_a cradle_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n their_o thunderbolt_n return_v upon_o their_o own_o head_n and_o herself_o like_o a_o tender_a plant_n after_o a_o thunder_n shower_n prosper_v the_o more_o and_o be_v no_o less_o full_a of_o honour_n than_o day_n she_o be_v gather_v to_o her_o father_n as_o a_o ripe_a sheaf_n of_o corn_n that_o be_v carry_v into_o the_o barn_n in_o so_o much_o that_o her_o successor_n our_o most_o renown_a sovereign_a in_o admiration_n of_o
her_o singular_a virtue_n and_o excellency_n erect_v to_o her_o everlasting_a memory_n a_o princely_a monument_n in_o the_o magnificent_a chapel_n of_o her_o grandfather_n henry_n the_o seven_o inscribe_v with_o this_o ensue_a epitaph_n of_o her_o greatness_n sacred_a unto_o memory_n religion_n to_o its_o primitive_a sincerity_n restore_v peace_n thorough_o settle_v coin_v to_o the_o true_a value_n refine_v rebellion_n at_o home_n extinguish_v france_n near_o ruin_n by_o intestine_a mischief_n relieve_v netherlands_n support_v spain_n armado_n vanquish_v ireland_n with_o spaniard_n expulsion_n and_o traitor_n coercion_n quiet_v both_o university_n revenue_n by_o a_o law_n of_o provision_n exceed_o augment_v final_o all_o england_n enrich_v and_o xlv_o year_n most_o prudent_o govern_v elizabeth_n a_o queen_n a_o conqueress_n a_o triumpher_n the_o most_o devote_a to_o piety_n the_o most_o happy_a after_o lxx_o year_n of_o her_o life_n quiet_o by_o death_n depart_v have_v leave_v here_o in_o this_o most_o famous_a collegiate_n church_n which_o by_o she_o be_v establish_v and_o refound_v these_o remain_v of_o her_o mortality_n until_o at_o christ_n call_n they_o shall_v again_o rise_v immortal_a she_o die_v the_o twenty-four_o of_o march_n the_o year_n of_o salvation_n mdcii_o of_o her_o reign_n xlv_o of_o her_o age_n lxx_o for_o a_o eternal_a memorial_n unto_o elizabeth_n queen_n of_o england_n france_n and_o ireland_n daughter_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o grandchild_n to_o k._n hen._n the_o vii_o great_a grandchild_n to_o k._n ed._n the_o four_o the_o mother_n of_o this_o her_o country_n the_o nurse_n of_o religion_n and_o learning_n for_o perfect_a skill_n of_o very_a many_o language_n for_o glorious_a endowment_n as_o well_o of_o mind_n as_o body_n and_o for_o regal_a virtue_n beyond_o her_o sex_n a_o prince_n incomparable_a james_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n king_n inheritor_n both_o of_o her_o virtue_n and_o kingdom_n to_o she_o so_o well_o deserve_v pious_o have_v this_o erect_v which_o i_o have_v the_o rather_o set_v down_o at_o large_a aswell_o for_o the_o reverence_n i_o bear_v her_o memory_n in_o who_o reign_n it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o part_n of_o my_o comfort_n that_o i_o be_v bear_v and_o baptize_v as_o to_o commend_v to_o posterity_n his_o majesty_n royal_a disposition_n in_o give_v her_o right_a so_o far_o as_o be_v it_o not_o authorize_v by_o his_o princely_a testimony_n future_a age_n will_v think_v it_o fabulous_a but_o special_o to_o show_v that_o he_o ascribe_v all_o her_o honour_n and_o prosperity_n not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o mr._n doctor_n do_v or_o to_o the_o religion_n by_o he_o call_v catholic_a but_o to_o her_o devotion_n and_o piety_n and_o the_o restore_n of_o religion_n to_o its_o primitive_a sincerity_n for_o with_o it_o as_o she_o make_v the_o entrance_n of_o her_o reign_n so_o do_v he_o of_o her_o epitaph_n both_o esteem_v it_o as_o the_o head_n spring_n from_o whence_o all_o that_o ensue_a happiness_n do_v flow_v and_o be_v derive_v neither_o can_v it_o in_o my_o understanding_n be_v otherwise_o ascribe_v to_o rome_n then_o in_o grant_v that_o the_o reputation_n and_o renown_n which_o she_o win_v be_v in_o part_n gain_v and_o much_o increase_v by_o escape_v through_o god_n especial_a providence_n ever_o watchful_a over_o she_o the_o manifold_a treason_n and_o frustrate_v the_o barbarous_a attempt_n that_o be_v hatch_v at_o rome_n and_o to_o be_v act_v by_o romish_a vassal_n aswell_o against_o her_o person_n as_o estate_n which_o make_v her_o great_a enemy_n confess_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v here_o and_o sure_o have_v not_o rome_n endeavour_v by_o might_n and_o main_a to_o quench_v and_o eclipse_v her_o light_n witness_v the_o bull_n of_o clement_n the_o 7_o while_o she_o be_v yet_o in_o her_o mother_n womb_n and_o afterward_o of_o pius_n and_o sixtus_n and_o cardinal_n comoes_n letter_n to_o parrie_n and_o cardinal_n allens_n book_n to_o the_o nobility_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1588._o i_o be_o clear_o of_o opinion_n the_o beam_n of_o her_o honour_n have_v not_o shine_v so_o clear_o and_o glorious_o to_o the_o world_n as_o they_o do_v last_o those_o singularity_n which_o you_o bring_v of_o be_v a_o woman_n a_o maiden_n queen_n and_o the_o last_o of_o her_o race_n they_o be_v indeed_o advantage_n of_o admiration_n but_o such_o in_o my_o judgement_n as_o rather_o show_v that_o she_o be_v bless_v from_o heaven_n then_o by_o any_o earthly_a mean_n in_o as_o much_o as_o live_v and_o die_v both_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o husband_n and_o hope_v of_o a_o heir_n from_o her_o own_o body_n she_o notwithstanding_o project_v and_o effect_v so_o great_a matter_n and_o so_o much_o good_a to_o the_o state_n she_o govern_v b._n c._n 5._o as_o for_o the_o honour_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o infidel_n as_o it_o reach_v no_o far_a than_o chapter_n this_o life_n so_o it_o have_v no_o beginning_n from_o above_o this_o world_n and_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v s._n ambrose_n in_o luc._n 4._o &_o alib●_fw-la those_o honour_n be_v donation_n confer_v rather_o by_o god_n permission_n than_o his_o donation_n be_v indeed_o ordain_v and_o order_v by_o his_o providence_n but_o for_o the_o 17._o sin_n of_o the_o people_n confer_v by_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o turkish_a empire_n have_v now_o continue_v a_o long_a time_n but_o they_o have_v other_o principle_n of_o state_n to_o stand_v upon_o the_o continual_a guard_n of_o a_o avouch_v hundred_o thousand_o soldier_n whereof_o most_o of_o they_o know_v none_o other_o parent_n but_o the_o emperor_n the_o tenure_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n who_o hold_v all_o in_o capite_fw-la ad_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la domini_fw-la by_o the_o service_n of_o the_o sword_n their_o enjoin_v silence_n and_o reverence_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o their_o facility_n in_o admit_v other_o religion_n aswell_o as_o their_o own_o to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o to_o tolerate_v they_o so_o that_o they_o be_v good_a subject_n government_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v principle_n of_o great_a importance_n to_o increase_v a_o empire_n and_o to_o maintain_v a_o temporal_a state_n but_o there_o be_v no_o state_n in_o christendom_n that_o may_v endure_v these_o principle_n unless_o they_o mean_v to_o turn_v turk_n also_o which_o although_o some_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v yet_o they_o will_v neither_o hold_v in_o capite_fw-la nor_o hold_v their_o peace_n in_o religion_n nor_o suffer_v their_o king_n to_o have_v such_o a_o guard_n about_o he_o nor_o admit_v of_o catholic_a religion_n so_o much_o as_o the_o turk_n do_v g._n h._n 5._o you_o may_v with_o the_o turk_n aswell_o have_v join_v the_o king_n of_o china_n the_o sophy_n of_o persia_n the_o chame_n of_o tartary_n the_o great_a magore_n presbyter_n john_n &_o the_o like_a who_o estate_n few_o christian_a prince_n exceed_v or_o can_v match_v in_o riches_n and_o greatness_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o estate_n confer_v on_o they_o by_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n neither_o ambrose_n affirm_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o in_o itself_o true_a saint_n ambrose_n his_o word_n be_v these_o a_o deo_fw-la potestatum_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la amalo_fw-la ambitio_fw-la potestatis_fw-la the_o ordain_v of_o the_o power_n be_v from_o god_n but_o the_o ambitious_a desire_n not_o the_o confer_v of_o it_o from_o the_o devil_n indeed_o it_o be_v his_o challenge_n in_o that_o chapter_n to_o whosoever_o i_o will_v i_o give_v it_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o wisdom_n 13._o in_o the_o 8_o the_o of_o the_o proverb_n by_o i_o king_n reign_v and_o saint_a paul_n teach_v we_o there_o be_v no_o power_n such_o as_o himself_o live_v under_o but_o of_o god_n to_o which_o purpose_n it_o be_v well_o say_v of_o s._n augustine_n who_o m._n doctor_n pretend_v to_o follow_v most_o among_o the_o ancient_n qui_fw-la dedit_fw-la mario_n 21._o ipse_fw-la &_o cesari_n qui_fw-la augusto_fw-la ipse_fw-la &_o neroni_n qui_fw-la vespasiano_n vel_fw-la patri_fw-la vel_fw-la filio_fw-la suavissimis_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la ipse_fw-la &_o domitiano_n crudelissimo_fw-la &_o ne_fw-la per_fw-la singulos_fw-la ire_n necesse_fw-la sit_fw-la qui_fw-la constantino_n christiano_n ipse_fw-la apostatae_fw-la juliano_n he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o marius_n give_v it_o to_o caesar_n he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o augustus_n give_v it_o to_o nero_n he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o vespasian_n the_o father_n or_o his_o son_n most_o sweet_a emperor_n give_v it_o also_o to_o domitian_n the_o most_o cruel_a and_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o reckon_v up_o the_o rest_n in_o particular_a he_o that_o give_v it_o to_o constantine_n the_o christian_n give_v it_o to_o julian_n the_o
apostata_fw-la so_o then_o in_o saint_n augustine_n opinion_n god_n do_v not_o only_o order_v those_o honour_n by_o his_o providence_n as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o but_o confer_v they_o by_o his_o bounty_n neither_o have_v we_o any_o reason_n to_o think_v but_o that_o he_o who_o call_v cyrus_n his_o shepherd_n and_o his_o anoint_v and_o give_v he_o the_o treasure_n of_o darkness_n and_o assure_a nabuchadonosor_n by_o his_o prophet_n that_o himself_o have_v give_v to_o he_o a_o kingdom_n and_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o glory_n may_v as_o true_o be_v say_v to_o have_v confer_v that_o government_n upon_o the_o turk_n which_o now_o he_o hold_v but_o it_o seem_v you_o aim_v through_o the_o turk_n side_n to_o strike_v at_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o through_o she_o at_o king_n james_n infidel_n and_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o roman_a language_n rank_v together_o so_o that_o their_o king_n dome_n be_v not_o by_o god_n donation_n they_o may_v lie_v loose_a and_o by_o occasion_n fall_v as_o it_o be_v by_o excheate_n to_o his_o holiness_n gift_n your_o reason_n of_o the_o largeness_n and_o long_a continuance_n of_o the_o turkish_a empire_n be_v as_o far_o from_o the_o purpose_n as_o your_o whole_a discourse_n be_v from_o any_o sound_a divinity_n for_o not_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o sift_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o which_o in_o some_o of_o they_o may_v not_o unjust_o be_v question_v your_o inference_n be_v that_o such_o principle_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n to_o increase_v and_o maintain_v a_o temporal_a estate_n but_o the_o point_n be_v whether_o any_o can_v be_v of_o sufficient_a importance_n to_o uphold_v any_o estate_n when_o god_n for_o the_o dishonour_n of_o his_o christ_n be_v purpose_v to_o ruin_v it_o and_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v of_o a_o fruitful_a land_n to_o make_v it_o barren_a for_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o people_n that_o dwell_v therein_o before_o you_o speak_v of_o a_o supernatural_a judgement_n of_o god_n in_o destruction_n and_o here_o of_o a_o natural_a and_o humane_a invention_n for_o preservation_n which_o can_v hold_v no_o more_o proportion_n with_o the_o former_a than_o a_o venice_n glass_n with_o a_o iron_n pot_n or_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n with_o a_o brazen_a last_o what_o state_n you_o shall_v mean_v that_o be_v willing_a to_o become_v turkish_a i_o know_v not_o but_o what_o they_o be_v that_o enjoy_v their_o estate_n in_o capite_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ad_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la domini_fw-la papae_fw-la and_o enjoin_v the_o great_a silence_n and_o outward_a reverence_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o withal_o be_v content_a to_o admit_v the_o toleration_n of_o jew_n and_o turk_n too_o in_o their_o dominion_n rather_o than_o of_o christian_n yourself_o when_o you_o write_v this_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a nay_o some_o of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o as_o namely_o alexander_n the_o vi_o and_o paulus_n the_o iii_o if_o we_o may_v credit_n thuanus_n have_v secret_a commerce_n with_o the_o great_a turk_n against_o the_o christian_a prince_n and_o the_o former_a of_o they_o if_o jovius_fw-la and_o guicciardin_n mistake_v not_o take_v under_o hand_n of_o the_o turk_n baiazet_n two_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n to_o kill_v his_o brother_n gemen_n and_o alexander_n the_o iii_o write_v to_o the_o sultan_n that_o if_o he_o will_v live_v quiet_o he_o shall_v by_o some_o sleight_n murder_v the_o emperor_n fredrick_n barbarossa_n and_o to_o that_o end_n send_v he_o the_o emperor_n picture_n b._n c._n 6._o it_o be_v most_o true_a which_o i_o glad_o write_v and_o so_o give_v out_o with_o all_o the_o honour_n i_o can_v of_o your_o majesty_n to_o speak_v that_o i_o think_v there_o be_v never_o any_o catholic_a king_n in_o england_n that_o do_v in_o his_o time_n more_o embrace_v and_o favour_v the_o true_a body_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o your_o majesty_n do_v the_o shadow_n shadow_n thereof_o that_o be_v yet_o leave_v and_o my_o firm_a hope_n be_v that_o this_o your_o desire_n to_o honour_v our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v move_v he_o to_o honour_v your_o majesty_n so_o much_o as_o not_o to_o suffer_v you_o to_o die_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o his_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o let_v you_o understand_v that_o all_o honour_n that_o be_v intend_v to_o he_o by_o 3._o schism_n and_o heresy_n do_v redound_v to_o his_o great_a dishonour_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o realla_fw-la and_o of_o his_o mystical_a body_n g._n h._n 6._o you_o honour_v his_o majesty_n much_o indeed_o in_o give_v out_o that_o he_o embrace_v a_o shadow_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o substance_n as_o ixion_n do_v a_o cloud_n in_o stead_n of_o juno_n and_o jacob_n blear-eyed_a lea_n in_o stead_n of_o rachel_n but_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o may_v safe_o say_v that_o with_o esop_n dog_n in_o snatch_v at_o the_o shadow_n she_o have_v lose_v the_o substance_n of_o religion_n she_o have_v so_o cover_v over_o all_o the_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n with_o the_o leaf_n of_o ceremony_n that_o hardly_o be_v the_o fruit_n itself_o to_o be_v see_v she_o have_v so_o bepaint_v the_o face_n of_o god_n worship_n that_o not_o easy_o be_v the_o native_a complexion_n thereof_o to_o be_v ●ound_v the_o poet_n speak_v it_o of_o the_o woman_n of_o his_o time_n pars_fw-la minima_fw-la est_fw-la ipsa_fw-la puellasui_fw-la but_o we_o may_v more_o true_o affirm_v it_o of_o the_o romish_a religion_n her_o ornament_n and_o apparel_n be_v such_o that_o a_o man_n may_v seek_v rome_n in_o rome_n and_o her_o religion_n in_o her_o religion_n and_o not_o find_v either_o i_o will_v give_v but_o one_o instance_n for_o all_o bellarmine_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n make_v no_o less_o than_o twelve_o ceremony_n to_o march_v before_o it_o five_o to_o assist_v and_o five_o to_o hold_v up_o the_o train_n of_o which_o some_o be_v profane_a the_o great_a part_n ridiculous_a and_o few_o or_o none_o wherein_o we_o differ_v so_o much_o as_o know_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n now_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v scour_v off_o the_o dross_n and_o pare_v away_o the_o superstition_n and_o novelty_n retain_v the_o substance_n together_o with_o the_o most_o comely_a and_o ancient_a ceremony_n aswell_o in_o this_o sacrament_n as_o in_o other_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o his_o majesty_n follow_v she_o therein_o shall_v he_o therefore_o be_v say_v to_o embrace_v the_o shadow_n and_o not_o the_o body_n whereas_o in_o truth_n if_o ever_o king_n of_o england_n embrace_v the_o body_n of_o religion_n without_o respect_n to_o the_o shadow_n of_o vain_a and_o needless_a ceremony_n it_o be_v his_o majesty_n which_o while_o he_o do_v there_o be_v little_a fear_n by_o god_n grace_n of_o his_o die_v out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n true_a catholic_a church_n who_o head_n be_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o christ_n himself_o understand_v in_o the_o 10._o of_o s._n johns_n gospel_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheepfold_a and_o one_o shepherd_n b._n c._n 7._o for_o his_o real_a body_n be_v not_o as_o the_o ubiquitary_n will_v have_v it_o every_o where_o aswell_o without_o the_o church_n as_o within_o but_o only_o where_o himself_o will_v have_v it_o and_o have_v ordain_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o that_o be_v among_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o who_o he_o deliver_v his_o sacrament_n and_o promise_v to_o continue_v with_o they_o until_o the_o world_n end_n so_o that_o though_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o that_o schism_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n for_o so_o he_o be_v present_a in_o hell_n hell_n also_o yet_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o humanity_n by_o participation_n of_o which_o grace_n only_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o salvation_n he_o be_v not_o present_a there_o at_o all_o except_o it_o be_v 26._o in_o corner_n and_o prison_n and_o place_n of_o persecution_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o honour_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v do_v to_o christ_n in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n be_v not_o do_v to_o he_o but_o to_o his_o utter_a enemy_n g._n h._n 7._o by_o the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n i_o suppose_v you_o understand_v the_o natural_a his_o mystical_a body_n be_v also_o real_a but_o not_o natural_a and_o i_o see_v not_o but_o this_o natural_a body_n may_v as_o well_o be_v every_o where_o wherein_o you_o tax_v the_o ubiquitaries_n as_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n and_o upon_o earth_n in_o ten_o thousand_o place_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n maintain_v but_o it_o seem_v by_o confine_v of_o he_o to_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n your_o purpose_n be_v to_o exclude_v he_o from_o
king_n and_o prince_n wheresoever_o they_o can_v prevail_v in_o which_o passage_n can_v none_o other_o be_v intend_v but_o the_o netherlander_n of_o who_o touch_v this_o point_n i_o will_v say_v no_o more_o that_o they_o be_v now_o after_o the_o waste_n of_o so_o much_o treasure_n and_o the_o shed_n of_o so_o much_o christian_a blood_n declare_v a_o free_a estate_n by_o he_o who_o regal_a right_n you_o pretend_v they_o overthrow_v last_o those_o who_o you_o call_v caluinist_n either_o deny_v or_o call_v into_o question_n as_o few_o principle_n of_o religion_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o any_o romish_a catholic_a nay_o i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v it_o and_o ready_a to_o make_v it_o good_a that_o the_o former_a maintain_v some_o of_o they_o strong_o which_o the_o latter_a overthrow_n if_o not_o in_o plain_a term_n and_o direct_o yet_o at_o least_o indirect_o and_o by_o consequence_n by_o establish_v their_o own_o article_n unknown_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o make_v the_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a creed_n of_o none_o effect_n and_o for_o exposition_n which_o concern_v not_o point_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o i_o can_v judge_v any_o thing_n your_o writer_n differ_v more_o among_o themselves_o and_o assume_v to_o themselves_o a_o great_a liberty_n in_o expound_v then_o we_o and_o if_o they_o be_v restrain_v of_o their_o allegorical_a tropological_a and_o anagogical_a interpretation_n as_o impertinent_a many_o time_n to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n as_o wide_a from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n they_o will_v present_o cry_v out_o that_o we_o despise_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o may_v be_v they_o have_v wrest_v the_o meaning_n of_o one_o or_o two_o latter_a father_n against_o the_o stream_n of_o antiquity_n and_o what_o bond_n of_o obedience_n can_v there_o be_v to_o god_n or_o to_o king_n for_o god_n sake_n in_o such_o religion_n b._n c._n 14._o it_o be_v common_o object_v by_o statesman_n that_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n what_o opinion_n man_n hold_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n so_o that_o they_o be_v keep_v in_o awe_n by_o justice_n and_o by_o the_o sword_n indeed_o for_o this_o world_n it_o be_v no_o matter_n at_o all_o for_o religion_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o do_v justice_n and_o to_o keep_v man_n in_o awe_n by_o the_o sword_n in_o military_a estate_n while_o the_o sword_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n there_o be_v the_o less_o need_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o great_a and_o day_n most_o martial_a estate_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v be_v willing_a to_o use_v the_o conscience_n and_o reverence_n of_o some_o religion_n or_o other_o to_o prepare_v their_o subject_n to_o obedience_n but_o in_o a_o peaceable_a government_n such_o as_o all_o christian_a kingdom_n do_v profess_v to_o be_v if_o the_o reins_n of_o religion_n be_v let_v loose_a the_o sword_n common_o be_v too_o weak_a and_o come_v to_o late_a and_o be_v like_a enough_o to_o give_v the_o day_n to_o the_o rebel_n and_o see_v the_o last_o and_o strong_a bond_n of_o justice_n be_v a_o oath_n which_o be_v a_o principal_a act_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v but_o a_o mockery_n if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o hell_n and_o the_o reward_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v unpossible_a to_o execute_v justice_n without_o the_o help_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o the_o neglect_n and_o contempt_n of_o religion_n have_v ever_o be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o destruction_n in_o all_o settle_a state_n whatsoever_o g._n h._n 14._o have_v now_o spend_v your_o powder_n and_o shot_n in_o discharge_v your_o three_o substantial_a reason_n and_o the_o apologize_n of_o the_o powder-treason_n for_o the_o fill_n up_o of_o your_o paper_n but_o to_o the_o abuse_n of_o his_o majesty_n leisure_n and_o patience_n you_o here_o begin_v a_o fresh_a with_o a_o solemn_a discourse_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o religion_n for_o a_o well_o order_v commonwealth_n under_o colour_n of_o meeting_n with_o a_o objection_n of_o statesman_n that_o it_o matter_n not_o what_o opinion_n man_n hold_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n so_o they_o be_v keep_v in_o awe_n by_o justice_n and_o by_o the_o sword_n but_o these_o statesman_n i_o take_v to_o be_v of_o machiavels_n sect_n who_o of_o what_o nation_n he_o be_v by_o birth_n and_o of_o what_o religion_n by_o profession_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a the_o ancient_a roman_n indeed_o be_v themselves_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n become_v vassal_n to_o the_o idol_n of_o all_o nation_n by_o admit_v the_o free_a use_n of_o their_o diverse_a religion_n of_o they_o all_o hold_v that_o as_o it_o seem_v the_o most_o perfect_a religion_n which_o refuse_v none_o as_o false_a neither_o be_v the_o turk_n much_o different_a from_o that_o opinion_n howbeit_o he_o prefer_v his_o own_o religion_n before_o all_o other_o but_o all_o other_o statesman_n who_o be_v so_o conversant_a in_o affair_n of_o state_n as_o they_o neglect_v not_o christanitie_n can_v not_o but_o hold_v the_o christian_a religion_n alone_o admittable_a in_o christian_a commonwealth_n now_o as_o we_o grant_v in_o all_o state_n some_o religion_n necessary_a and_o in_o christian_a state_n only_o the_o christian_n admittable_a so_o with_o all_o we_o confess_v a_o oath_n to_o be_v a_o principal_a act_n of_o that_o religion_n but_o how_o it_o be_v abuse_v by_o romish_n catholic_n for_o serve_v their_o own_o turn_n by_o dispensation_n by_o equivocation_n and_o mental_a reservation_n both_o history_n witness_v and_o we_o have_v have_v too_o great_a experience_n by_o which_o mean_v that_o which_o indeed_o shall_v be_v the_o sure_a and_o strong_a band_n of_o truth_n &_o justice_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 16._o a_o end_n of_o all_o strife_n be_v become_v the_o matter_n of_o quarrel_n and_o a_o mere_a vizard_n for_o injustice_n and_o falsehood_n to_o mask_v under_o and_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n as_o the_o romish_a religion_n be_v grow_v odious_a to_o we_o so_o for_o their_o sake_n both_o we_o and_o they_o go_v both_o under_o the_o common_a name_n of_o christian_n be_v in_o that_o respect_n grow_v odious_a to_o the_o very_a turk_n who_o observe_v a_o oath_n make_v by_o the_o name_n of_o their_o mahomet_n more_o inviolable_o than_o we_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n one_o to_o another_o as_o well_o appear_v by_o our_o king_n henry_n the_o three_o who_o be_v a_o great_a exactor_n upon_o the_o poor_a commons_o as_o ever_o be_v any_o king_n before_o he_o or_o since_o and_o think_v thereby_o to_o win_v the_o people_n soon_o to_o his_o devotion_n most_o faithful_o promise_v they_o once_o or_o twice_o and_o thereunto_o bind_v himself_o with_o a_o solemn_a oath_n both_o before_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n to_o grant_v unto_o they_o the_o old_a liberty_n and_o custom_n of_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la and_o charta_fw-la de_fw-fr foresta_n perpetual_o to_o be_v observe_v whereupon_o a_o quindecim_fw-la be_v grant_v to_o the_o king_n but_o after_o the_o payment_n be_v sure_a the_o king_n trust_v the_o pope_n dispensation_n for_o a_o little_a money_n to_o be_v discharge_v of_o his_o oath_n and_o covenant_n go_v from_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o solemn_o swear_v before_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o say_a king_n at_o another_o time_n be_v in_o need_n of_o money_n sign_v himself_o with_o the_o cross_n pretend_v and_o swear_v deep_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a parliament_n that_o he_o himself_o will_v go_v in_o person_n against_o the_o saracen_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o money_n be_v finger_v small_a care_n be_v take_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v so_o put_v in_o head_n by_o certain_a about_o he_o that_o he_o need_v not_o to_o pass_v of_o that_o perjury_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o hundred_o pound_n or_o two_o will_v quick_o discharge_v he_o thereof_o as_o matthew_n paris_n report_v it_o who_o live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o be_v often_o in_o court_n with_o he_o this_o be_v then_o the_o account_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o pope_n easy_a dispensation_n king_n make_v of_o their_o oath_n to_o their_o subject_n the_o like_a account_n by_o the_o same_o mean_n do_v charles_n the_o 9_o of_o france_n and_o the_o queen_n his_o mother_n make_v of_o their_o oath_n take_v to_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o condie_n the_o admiral_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o protestant_a profession_n at_o what_o time_n his_o sister_n marriage_n be_v make_v more_o red_a with_o their_o blood_n then_o his_o wine_n but_o this_o blood_n cry_v for_o vengeance_n himself_o at_o his_o death_n issue_v blood_n at_o all_o the_o passage_n of_o his_o body_n neither_o do_v subject_n make_v any_o other_o reckon_n of_o their_o oath_n take_v to_o their_o king_n
first_o table_n in_o their_o number_n make_v of_o four_o but_o three_o and_o of_o those_o three_o they_o break_v the_o first_o and_o second_o in_o worship_v the_o bless_a virgin_n angel_n saint_n relic_n image_n with_o divine_a worship_n and_o in_o special_a the_o crucifix_n and_o sacramental_a bread_n profess_o with_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o christ_n as_o god_n and_o what_o account_n they_o make_v of_o the_o other_o two_o their_o little_a reckon_n of_o blaspheme_v and_o profane_v god_n name_n and_o god_n day_n give_v but_o too_o sufficient_a demonstration_n to_o the_o world_n but_o to_o be_v plain_a with_o you_o i_o find_v no_o such_o word_n in_o saint_n it_o francis_n bacon_n essay_n print_v the_o year_n 1612._o they_o which_o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o have_v revise_v there_o be_v only_o one_o of_o religion_n and_o that_o the_o very_o first_o which_o speak_v so_o witty_o so_o learned_o so_o full_o against_o your_o drift_n in_o this_o place_n and_o the_o former_a section_n which_o show_v how_o the_o devil_n out_o of_o the_o arsenal_n of_o false_a apprehension_n send_v forth_o the_o distort_a engine_n of_o action_n they_o be_v his_o own_o word_n in_o that_o place_n as_o i_o can_v but_o hold_v it_o both_o a_o fence_n and_o a_o grace_n to_o insert_v it_o into_o my_o answer_n whole_a and_o entire_a as_o himself_o have_v deliver_v it_o lest_o i_o shall_v do_v he_o injury_n by_o mangle_v it_o the_o quarrel_n and_o division_n for_o religion_n say_v he_o be_v evil_n unknowen_a to_o the_o heathen_a and_o no_o marvel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o true_a god_n that_o be_v the_o jealous_a god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o the_o heathen_a be_v good_a fellow_n but_o yet_o the_o bound_n of_o religious_a unity_n be_v so_o to_o be_v strengthen_v that_o the_o bound_n of_o humane_a society_n be_v not_o dissolve_v lucretius_n the_o poet_n when_o he_o behold_v the_o act_n of_o agamemnon_n endure_v and_o assist_v at_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o daughter_n conclude_v with_o this_o verse_n tantum_n religio_fw-la potuit_fw-la suadere_fw-la malorum_fw-la but_o what_o will_v he_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v know_v the_o massacre_n of_o france_n or_o the_o powder_n treason_n of_o england_n certain_o he_o will_v have_v be_v seven_o time_n more_o epicure_n and_o atheist_n than_o he_o be_v nay_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v choose_v to_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o mad_a man_n of_o munster_n then_o a_o partaker_n of_o those_o counsel_n for_o it_o be_v better_a that_o religion_n shall_v deface_v man_n understanding_n than_o their_o piety_n and_o charity_n retain_v reason_n only_o but_o as_o a_o engine_n and_o chariot-driver_n of_o cruelty_n and_o malice_n it_o be_v great_a blasphemy_n when_o the_o devil_n say_v i_o will_v ascend_v and_o be_v like_o the_o high_a but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a blasphemy_n if_o they_o make_v god_n to_o say_v i_o will_v descend_v and_o be_v like_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n and_o it_o be_v no_o better_o when_o they_o make_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n descend_v to_o the_o execrable_a action_n of_o the_o murder_n of_o prince_n butcher_v of_o people_n and_o fire_v of_o state_n neither_o be_v there_o such_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o one_o shall_v take_v it_o literal_o as_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n to_o bring_v he_o down_o in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o vulture_n or_o raven_n nor_o such_o a_o scandal_n to_o their_o church_n as_o out_o of_o the_o bark_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o flag_n of_o a_o barge_n of_o pirate_n and_o assassin_n therefore_o since_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o common_a enemy_n of_o humane_a society_n prince_n by_o their_o power_n church_n by_o their_o decree_n and_o all_o learning_n christian_n moral_a of_o whatsoever_o sect_n or_o opinion_n by_o their_o mercury_n rod_n aught_o to_o join_v in_o the_o damn_v to_o hell_n for_o ever_o these_o fact_n and_o their_o support_n and_o in_o all_o counsel_n concern_v religion_n that_o counsel_n of_o the_o apostle_n will_v be_v prefix_v ira_fw-la hominis_fw-la non_fw-la implet_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o same_o noble_a gentleman_n speak_v much_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o his_o essay_n of_o superstition_n as_o that_o it_o erect_v a_o absolute_a tyranny_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n it_o have_v be_v the_o confusion_n and_o dissolution_n of_o many_o state_n an●_n bring_v a_o new_a primum_fw-la mobile_a that_o ravish_v all_o the_o sphere_n of_o government_n the_o master_n say_v he_o of_o superstition_n be_v the_o people_n and_o in_o all_o superstition_n wise_a man_n follow_v fool_n &_o argument_n be_v fit_v to_o practice_v in_o a_o reverse_a order_n and_o thus_o i_o hope_v by_o this_o time_n mr._n doctor_n have_v gain_v little_a to_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o cause_n from_o the_o true_a and_o wise_a observation_n of_o sir_n francis_n bacon_n last_o for_o your_o instance_n in_o mutinous_a soldier_n i_o can_v conceive_v whither_o your_o discourse_n tend_v but_o to_o show_v that_o more_o honesty_n be_v yet_o leave_v among_o we_o then_o in_o those_o of_o your_o profession_n and_o be_v like_a to_o be_v as_o long_o as_o we_o fear_v the_o assault_n of_o a_o common_a enemy_n which_o be_v like_a to_o be_v as_o long_o as_o you_o remain_v in_o opinion_n and_o condition_n like_o yourselves_o b._n c._n 17._o and_o as_o for_o their_o exhortation_n to_o obedience_n to_o your_o majesty_n when_o they_o have_v first_o infect_v the_o understanding_n of_o your_o subject_n with_o such_o principle_n of_o rebellion_n as_o have_v disturb_v and_o overthrow_v all_o other_o state_n where_o they_o have_v their_o will_n it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o think_v upon_o such_o exhortation_n and_o all_o one_o as_o if_o a_o fantastical_a fellow_n find_v a_o toto_fw-la herd_n of_o young_a cattle_n in_o a_o close_a shall_v first_o break_v down_o the_o hedge_n and_o then_o cry_v aloud_o to_o the_o cattle_n they_o do_v not_o venture_v to_o go_v out_o not_o seek_v any_o fat_a pasture_n for_o fear_v they_o be_v put_v in_o the_o pound_n and_o if_o they_o chance_v to_o feed_v where_o they_o be_v because_o they_o have_v no_o experience_n of_o other_o and_o to_o tarry_v in_o the_o close_a for_o a_o hour_n or_o two_o than_o the_o unhappy_a fellow_n shall_v run_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o cattle_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o great_a service_n he_o have_v do_v he_o and_o how_o he_o have_v keep_v his_o cattle_n in_o the_o close_a by_o ●is_n goodly_a wise_o charm_n &_o exhortation_n let_v they_o say_v what_o they_o list_v of_o their_o own_o honesty_n and_o of_o their_o exhortation_n to_o obedience_n narratur_fw-la as_o long_o as_o they_o do_v free_o infect_v the_o people_n soul_n with_o such_o false_a opinion_n in_o religion_n they_o do_v certain_o sow_v the_o seed_n of_o disobedience_n &_o rebellion_n in_o man_n understand_n which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o prevent_v by_o your_o majesty_n give_v way_n to_o catholic_a religion_n will_v in_o all_o likelihood_n spring_v up_o in_o the_o next_o generation_n to_o the_o great_a prejudice_n and_o molestation_n of_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o posterity_n so_o that_o whether_o i_o do_v respect_n heaven_n or_o earth_n my_o own_o soul_n or_o the_o service_n of_o your_o majesty_n god_n or_o your_o neighbour_n or_o your_o subject_n my_o assure_a hope_n be_v that_o by_o join_v myself_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o neither_o have_v do_v nor_o shall_v do_v any_o ill_a duty_n or_o service_n unto_o your_o majesty_n g._n h._n 17._o you_o say_v that_o our_o exhortation_n to_o obedience_n be_v ridiculous_a the_o understanding_n be_v once_o infect_v with_o such_o principle_n of_o rebellion_n as_o we_o teach_v have_v you_o vouchsafe_v to_o have_v stoop_v to_o the_o nominate_n of_o those_o principle_n in_o particular_a you_o have_v deal_v ingenuous_o and_o give_v some_o matter_n of_o reply_n but_o as_o you_o will_v show_v yourself_o a_o politician_n in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o your_o discourse_n so_o do_v you_o special_o in_o this_o that_o throughout_o you_o insist_v upon_o universals_z which_o not_o only_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o their_o vulgar_a reader_n but_o yield_v start_a hole_n of_o evasion_n to_o the_o author_n what_o your_o principle_n be_v and_o what_o we_o touch_v obedience_n to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n i_o have_v already_o open_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o twelve_o and_o thirteen_o section_n of_o this_o chapter_n now_o the_o remedy_n you_o say_v to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n likely_a to_o ensue_v upon_o such_o doctrine_n be_v the_o admission_n of_o catholic_a religion_n as_o if_o we_o never_o hear_v nor_o read_v of_o any_o rebellion_n abroad_o nor_o at_o home_o raise_v from_o the_o professor_n of_o that_o religion_n during_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o six_o
shallow_a as_o proceed_v rather_o from_o affection_n then_o judgement_n be_v this_o because_o if_o a_o man_n ask_v you_o say_v in_o cold_a blood_n whether_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v save_v the_o most_o learned_a churchman_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o wherein_o if_o we_o be_v more_o charitable_a to_o you_o than_o you_o be_v to_o we_o in_o pass_v censure_n of_o damnation_n it_o shall_v in_o my_o judgement_n rather_o argue_v the_o goodness_n of_o that_o religion_n from_o whence_o such_o charity_n flow_v towards_o man_n person_n then_o be_v urge_v as_o a_o proof_n for_o the_o approbation_n of_o that_o erroneous_a doctrine_n which_o in_o itself_o it_o condemn_v the_o turk_n be_v too_o liberal_a in_o admit_v all_o religion_n to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o be_v too_o niggardly_a and_o spare_v in_o shut_v out_o all_o from_o the_o hope_n thereof_o which_o receive_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o their_o forehead_n or_o hand_n we_o desire_v to_o run_v a_o middle_a course_n betwixt_o both_o extreme_n as_o we_o shut_v out_o all_o such_o who_o direct_o deny_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n so_o do_v we_o pass_v a_o favourable_a censure_n on_o those_o who_o deny_v he_o not_o of_o malice_n but_o of_o ignorance_n and_o that_o not_o direct_o but_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n paul_n have_v in_o the_o five_o to_o the_o galatian_n if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o that_o be_v if_o a_o man_n put_v his_o trust_n in_o circumcision_n or_o in_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o christ_n though_o with_o christ_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n he_o be_v abolish_v from_o christ_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n now_o what_o confidence_n the_o romanist_n put_v in_o their_o own_o satisfaction_n for_o venial_a sin_n and_o temporal_a punishment_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n due_a to_o mortal_a their_o write_n testify_v but_o yet_o our_o assurance_n be_v that_o many_o of_o they_o when_o they_o come_v to_o make_v their_o last_o account_n betwixt_o god_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o thorough_o consider_v of_o the_o weakness_n and_o corruption_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n for_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o own_o proper_a righteousness_n and_o for_o the_o avoid_v of_o vainglory_n according_a to_o beauties_n advice_n 7._o they_o rest_v whole_o in_o the_o alone_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n renounce_v in_o particular_a that_o merit_n of_o work_n which_o their_o church_n in_o general_a for_o she_o own_o advantage_n maintain_v and_o teach_v they_o to_o maintain_v or_o last_o god_n of_o his_o graciousnesse_n may_v accept_v of_o their_o repentance_n for_o unknowen_a sin_n and_o consequent_o for_o their_o erroneous_a opinon_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o education_n they_o unwitting_o embrace_v yet_o this_o charitable_a construction_n of_o we_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o we_o either_o to_o shut_v our_o eye_n against_o a_o know_a truth_n or_o to_o open_v our_o ear_n to_o hearken_v to_o any_o motion_n of_o reconcilement_n to_o a_o know_a error_n now_o whether_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v a_o good_a subject_n whole_o submit_v himself_o to_o romish_a position_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o his_o majesty_n speech_n in_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1605_o who_o shall_v know_v what_o belong_v to_o his_o own_o state_n and_o to_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 12._o sect._n of_o this_o chapter_n a_o part_n of_o his_o majesty_n very_a word_n in_o that_o speech_n be_v these_o i_o therefore_o do_v thus_o conclude_v this_o point_n that_o as_o upon_o the_o one_o part_v many_o honest_a man_n seduce_v with_o some_o error_n of_o popery_n may_v yet_o remain_v good_a &_o faithful_a subject_n point_n so_o upon_o the_o other_o part_n none_o of_o those_o that_o true_o know_v and_o believe_v the_o whole_a ground_n and_o school_n conclusion_n of_o their_o doctrine_n can_v ever_o prove_v good_a christian_n or_o faithful_a subject_n if_o then_o we_o be_v so_o far_o divide_v both_o in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o king_n how_o can_v we_o but_o be_v utter_o divide_v in_o ourselves_o b._n c._n 20._o true_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o but_o only_o the_o violence_n of_o affection_n which_o be_v in_o a_o course_n can_v without_o some_o force_n force_n be_v stay_v the_o multitude_n do_v seldom_o or_o never_o judge_v according_a unto_o truth_n but_o according_a unto_o custom_n and_o therefore_o have_v be_v breed_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o hatred_n of_o spaniard_n and_o papist_n can_v choose_v but_o think_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o hate_v they_o still_o and_o that_o whosoever_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o catholic_a religion_n be_v their_o utter_a enemy_n and_o the_o puritanical_a preacher_n who_o can_v have_v no_o be_v in_o charity_n do_v never_o cease_v by_o speak_v falsification_n and_o slander_n to_o blow_v the_o coal_n that_o he_o may_v burn_v they_o and_o warm_v himself_o but_o if_o your_o majesty_n shall_v ever_o be_v please_v to_o command_v those_o make-bates_a to_o hold_v their_o peace_n a_o while_n and_o to_o say_v nothing_o but_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o sufficient_a authority_n before_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o admit_v a_o dominion_n conference_n of_o learned_a and_o moderate_a man_n on_o either_o side_n the_o people_n who_o be_v now_o abuse_v and_o with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n hold_v in_o extreme_a ignorance_n be_v not_o yet_o so_o uncapable_a but_o they_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o hear_v of_o the_o truth_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v not_o simple_o and_o evident_o deliver_v by_o honest_a man_n and_o then_o they_o will_v plain_o see_v that_o their_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o so_o much_o talk_v of_o be_v but_o a_o counterfeit_a light_n in_o a_o thief_n lantern_n whereby_o honest_a man_n eye_n be_v testify_v dazzle_v and_o their_o purse_n rob_v and_o it_o will_v also_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v not_o indeed_o any_o such_o chap._n irreconciliable_a opposition_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n as_o they_o that_o live_v by_o the_o schism_n do_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v there_o be_v neither_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n nor_o in_o matter_n of_o state_n g._n h._n 20._o you_o far_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v in_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o section_n that_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n arise_v rather_o from_o affection_n then_o judgement_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o multitude_n do_v seldom_o or_o never_o judge_v according_a to_o truth_n but_o according_a unto_o custom_n now_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o stand_v upon_o multitude_n and_o that_o multitude_n upon_o custom_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o shall_v be_v the_o judge_n nay_o not_o only_o your_o multitude_n but_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o your_o church_n stand_v most_o upon_o it_o if_o you_o have_v but_o look_v into_o your_o great_a 5._o cardinal_n note_n of_o your_o church_n you_o shall_v have_v find_v antiquity_n or_o custom_n to_o have_v be_v the_o second_o howbeit_o both_o 18._o acosta_n and_o 1._o xaverius_n in_o their_o several_a write_n make_v the_o indian_n stand_v upon_o their_o custom_n the_o chief_a difficulty_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o christ_n it_o be_v symmachus_n the_o pagan_n argument_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n record_v by_o 30._o s._n ambrose_n seruanda_fw-la est_fw-la tot_fw-la saeculis_fw-la fides_fw-la nostra_fw-la &_o sequendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la maiores_fw-la nostri_fw-la qui_fw-la secuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la foeliciter_fw-la suos_fw-la our_o religion_n which_o have_v now_o continue_v so_o many_o year_n be_v still_o to_o be_v retain_v and_o our_o ancestor_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v by_o we_o who_o happy_o trace_v the_o step_n of_o their_o forefather_n and_o be_v not_o this_o mr._n doctor_n own_o argument_n to_o persuade_v his_o majesty_n to_o the_o romish_a religion_n in_o the_o 2._o and_o 10._o sect._n of_o this_o chapter_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o in_o this_o place_n he_o find_v fault_n with_o those_o that_o judge_v according_a to_o custom_n and_o make_v it_o a_o popular_a error_n teach_v that_o a_o while_n and_o indeed_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o shake_v hand_n with_o rome_n she_o stand_v upon_o a_o pretend_a truth_n of_o antiquity_n but_o we_o upon_o the_o antiquity_n of_o truth_n in_o as_o much_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v not_o i_o be_o antiquity_n but_o i_o be_o truth_n and_o s._n cyprian_n his_o bless_a martyr_n antiquity_n without_o truth_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o ancient_a error_n now_o the_o reason_n you_o give_v that_o our_o
they_o be_v not_o silence_v they_o must_v say_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o sufficient_a authority_n before_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v as_o if_o our_o bishop_n be_v ignorant_a that_o it_o belong_v to_o their_o charge_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o unsound_a doctrine_n within_o their_o diocese_n and_o according_o to_o censure_v it_o or_o know_v what_o be_v their_o duty_n in_o that_o behalf_n they_o be_v more_o unwilling_a or_o unable_a to_o perform_v it_o than_o doctor_n carier_n and_o his_o college_n of_o critic_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n a_o conference_n must_v be_v have_v of_o learned_a and_o moderate_a man_n on_o either_o side_n such_o belike_o as_o yourself_o like_o metius_n suffetius_n lukewarm_a halt_v betwixt_o two_o opinion_n row_v to_o the_o shore_n and_o look_v to_o the_o sea_n hold_v with_o the_o hare_n and_o run_v with_o the_o hound_n who_o public_o pray_v for_o the_o king_n and_o private_o work_v for_o the_o pope_n true_a learning_n we_o reverence_v and_o christian_a moderation_n we_o high_o esteem_v but_o 20._o science_n false_o so_o call_v bend_v to_o the_o patronage_n of_o falsehood_n and_o neutralitie_n under_o the_o vizard_n of_o moderation_n to_o the_o reconcile_n of_o error_n to_o truth_n be_v but_o the_o abuse_n of_o fair_a and_o honourable_a title_n to_o base_a and_o malicious_a end_n which_o imputation_n you_o labour_v to_o fasten_v upon_o we_o as_o if_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o hold_v the_o people_n in_o extreme_a ignorance_n whereas_o the_o prophet_n david_n tell_v we_o that_o 105._o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o lantern_n to_o his_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o his_o path_n and_o s._n peter_n 19_o you_o have_v a_o most_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o which_o you_o do_v well_o that_o you_o take_v heed_n as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n but_o you_o bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n hold_v man_n in_o extreme_a ignorance_n zachary_n prophesy_v of_o his_o ●onne_n the_o baptist_n that_o 79._o he_o be_v ordain_v to_o give_v light_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n to_o guide_v their_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o baptist_n himself_o of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v 9_o that_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o serve_v to_o dazzle_v man_n eye_n and_o rob_v their_o purse_n and_o no_o doubt_n have_v you_o live_v among_o the_o pharisee_n in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n or_o john_n the_o baptist_n you_o will_v have_v call_v their_o doctrine_n a_o counterfeit_a light_n in_o a_o thief_n lantern_n aswell_o as_o we_o be_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o with_o they_o and_o for_o ignorance_n i_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v it_o with_o a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n to_o god_n for_o it_o that_o a_o good_a part_n of_o our_o people_n be_v more_o expert_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v better_a able_a to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o they_o than_o many_o of_o your_o prelate_n and_o priest_n whereof_o some_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o brotherhood_n of_o ignorance_n and_o all_o at_o least_o by_o your_o practice_n acknowledge_v she_o the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o 18._o withhold_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n like_o esopes_n dog_n you_o neither_o eat_v hay_n yourselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o eat_v it_o you_o pretend_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n but_o you_o neither_o enter_v in_o yourselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v you_o neither_o read_v nor_o esteem_v the_o scripture_n yourselves_o as_o you_o ought_v nor_o suffer_v the_o people_n to_o read_v they_o but_o seal_v they_o up_o in_o a_o unknown_a language_n to_o the_o use_n of_o a_o few_o with_o who_o you_o please_v to_o dispense_v b._n c._n 21._o for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o your_o majesty_n or_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v molest_v or_o burden_a for_o the_o mainetenance_n of_o caluinisme_n doctrine_n which_o be_v as_o much_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v against_o the_o religion_n of_o rome_n and_o will_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n overthrow_v not_o only_o testify_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n save_v only_o so_o much_o as_o the_o moderation_n turk_n himself_o will_v be_v content_a to_o believe_v which_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o prove_v upon_o better_a offer_v leisure_n the_o doctrine_n of_o england_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o church_n catechism_n confirm_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o by_o your_o majesty_n edict_n wherein_o all_o englishman_n be_v you_o baptize_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v confirm_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v some_o reason_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v stand_v upon_o but_o this_o doctrine_n in_o most_o of_o the_o main_a point_n thereof_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v touch_v before_o and_o require_v a_o doctrine_n just_a treatise_n to_o set_v down_o in_o particular_a do_v much_o differ_v from_o the_o current_a opinion_n and_o catechism_n of_o caluinisme_n do_v very_o near_o agree_v with_o or_o at_o least_o not_o doctrine_n contradict_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o we_o list_v with_o prove_v patience_n to_o hear_v one_o another_o and_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o we_o be_v she_o make_v to_o be_v at_o war_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whether_o we_o will_v or_o not_o do_v rather_o arguethe_v follow_v corruption_n of_o the_o state_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v then_o be_v argue_v by_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o religion_n whereupon_o they_o stand_v and_o the_o contradiction_n of_o doctrine_n have_v follow_v the_o alteration_n of_o state_n and_o not_o the_o alteration_n of_o state_n be_v ground_v upon_o any_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n g._n h._n 21._o we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o one_o of_o the_o main_a point_n you_o drive_v at_o howbeit_o you_o seem_v only_o to_o glance_v at_o it_o in_o passage_n and_o to_o draw_v it_o on_o upon_o the_o bye_n which_o be_v to_o put_v we_o off_o from_o all_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n with_o those_o church_n who_o acknowledge_v calvin_n to_o have_v be_v a_o excellent_a instrument_n of_o god_n in_o the_o abolish_n and_o suppress_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o clear_n and_o spread_v of_o his_o truth_n that_o so_o be_v separate_v from_o they_o we_o may_v either_o stand_v single_a and_o be_v encounter_v alone_o or_o return_v again_o to_o our_o old_a bias_n and_o relapse_n upon_o rome_n and_o so_o through_o calvin_n side_n you_o strike_v at_o the_o throat_n and_o heart_n of_o our_o religion_n for_o our_o part_n we_o all_o wish_n with_o the_o reverend_a &_o learned_a ely_n prelate_n of_o our_o own_o church_n that_o you_o be_v no_o more_o papist_n than_o we_o caluinist_n no_o more_o pin_v on_o the_o pope_n sleeve_n than_o we_o on_o caluin_n who_o we_o esteem_v as_o a_o worthy_a man_n but_o a_o man_n and_o consequent_o subject_a to_o humane_a error_n and_o frailty_n we_o maintain_v nothing_o with_o he_o because_o he_o affirm_v it_o but_o because_o from_o infallible_a ground_n he_o prove_v it_o whereas_o the_o pope_n bare_a assertion_n with_o you_o be_v proof_n sufficient_a you_o be_v so_o swear_v to_o his_o word_n that_o they_o be_v of_o equal_a or_o high_a authority_n with_o you_o then_o pythagoras_n his_o precept_n with_o his_o scholar_n ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la be_v enough_o for_o your_o warrant_n but_o for_o we_o we_o embrace_v calvin_n as_o himself_o do_v author_n not_o divine_a usque_fw-la ad_fw-la arras_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o with_o divine_a he_o accord_v and_o no_o far_o this_o be_v our_o judgement_n of_o calvin_n but_o to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o maintain_v be_v as_o much_o against_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v against_o that_o of_o rome_n be_v a_o desperate_a assertion_n and_o such_o as_o can_v never_o be_v make_v good_a do_v all_o our_o fugitive_n lay_v their_o head_n together_o and_o be_v all_o their_o wit_n turn_v into_o one_o and_o i_o much_o marvel_v what_o you_o mean_v pretend_v so_o much_o tenderness_n of_o conscience_n and_o diligence_n in_o search_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o suffer_v your_o malice_n so_o far_o to_o prevail_v upon_o your_o judgement_n as_o to_o let_v so_o foul_a a_o blot_n so_o manifest_a a_o falsehood_n to_o drop_v from_o your_o pen_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o to_o present_v it_o to_o the_o scan_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o prince_n and_o to_o publish_v it_o to_o the_o view_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o world_n for_o if_o calvin_n
doctrine_n be_v as_o opposite_a to_o our_o religion_n as_o to_o the_o romish_a then_o must_v it_o need_v follow_v that_o either_o we_o and_o the_o romish_a agree_v in_o one_o or_o that_o we_o be_v as_o distant_a from_o caluin_n as_o caluin_n be_v from_o the_o romish_a both_o which_o to_o be_v untrue_a appear_v aswell_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o other_o romish_a writer_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o in_o his_o mandavit_fw-la bull_n against_o queen_n elizbaeth_n as_o those_o who_o they_o term_v lutheran_n who_o frankfurt_n ever_o range_v we_o among_o the_o caluinist_n as_o also_o of_o our_o own_o writer_n and_o those_o of_o foreign_a church_n by_o you_o term_v caluinistical_a because_o with_o he_o they_o join_v in_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n the_o manifold_a religion_n letter_n by_o they_o write_v and_o book_n dedicate_v to_o our_o late_a bless_a queen_n our_o bishop_n and_o noble_a man_n by_o french_a and_o helvetian_a divine_n special_o of_o zurich_n and_o basil_n testify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o then_o hold_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o they_o and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o know_v neither_o they_o nor_o we_o be_v since_o change_v save_v only_o some_o such_o neutral_n as_o yourself_o labour_v to_o draw_v we_o near_o to_o rome_n than_o they_o can_v be_v draw_v or_o the_o truth_n itself_o will_v permit_v that_o we_o shall_v among_o many_o other_o testimony_n i_o will_v only_o instance_n in_o two_o the_o one_o a_o helvetian_a touch_v our_o conformity_n with_o foreign_a reform_a church_n in_o former_a time_n the_o other_o a_o french_a man_n touch_v the_o present_a the_o helvetian_a be_v bullinger_n who_o dedicate_a his_o commentary_n upon_o daniel_n to_o horn_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n jewel_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n sand_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n parkhurst_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n and_o pilkington_n bishop_n of_o durham_n in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a profess_v he_o do_v it_o chief_o to_o this_o end_n that_o posterity_n may_v understand_v their_o indissoluble_a knot_n of_o friendship_n and_o the_o mutual_a consent_n between_o england_n and_o suisserland_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n howbeit_o they_o be_v remove_v far_o asunder_o in_o situation_n of_o place_n the_o french_a be_v peter_n moulin_n who_o in_o defence_n of_o his_o majesty_n book_n against_o coffeteau_n acknowledge_v that_o we_o have_v enough_o sufficient_a man_n of_o our_o own_o to_o defend_v the_o cause_n but_o that_o he_o undertake_v the_o work_n to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o same_o confession_n which_o his_o majesty_n have_v make_v be_v also_o they_o and_o that_o they_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v assail_v in_o his_o person_n and_o write_n but_o what_o need_v i_o stand_v upon_o the_o particular_a testimony_n of_o private_a man_n since_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n be_v extant_a to_o be_v compare_v as_o well_o in_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o harmony_n as_o in_o that_o other_o term_v the_o body_n of_o confession_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o give_v the_o reader_n some_o satisfaction_n i_o will_v set_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o point_n of_o difference_n together_o with_o caluint_a on_o the_o one_o side_n of_o it_o and_o the_o romish_a on_o the_o other_o that_o so_o we_o may_v make_v some_o estimate_n whether_o caluinisme_n be_v as_o opposite_a to_o the_o religion_n of_o england_n as_o to_o that_o of_o rome_n now_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o will_v not_o extend_v it_o so_o wide_a as_o to_o the_o book_n and_o lecture_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o public_a professor_n the_o light_n and_o guide_v of_o our_o church_n and_o university_n nor_o yet_o contract_n and_o confine_v it_o as_o mr._n doctor_n do_v within_o the_o narrow_a compass_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o church_n catechism_n the_o book_n of_o canon_n and_o therein_o nowel_n catechism_n can._n 79._o be_v confirm_v and_o allow_v by_o public_a authority_n but_o above_o all_o i_o very_o much_o marvel_n mr._n doctor_n memory_n shall_v so_o far_o fail_v he_o as_o quite_o and_o clean_o to_o forget_v the_o book_n of_o article_n solemn_o agree_v upon_o by_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n and_o clergy_n of_o this_o kingdom_n at_o two_o several_a meeting_n or_o convocation_n of_o they_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1562_o and_o again_o 1604_o and_o late_o again_o confirm_v by_o two_o several_a canon_n the_o 5_o and_o 36_o in_o number_n since_o himself_o subscribe_v to_o they_o at_o the_o take_n of_o his_o order_n if_o not_o of_o his_o degree_n and_o live_v a_o long_a time_n as_o chaplain_n in_o house_n with_o archbishop_n whitegift_n and_o since_o keep_v his_o ordinary_a turn_n of_o wait_v at_o court_n and_o residence_n at_o canterbury_n he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o nay_o i_o can_v show_v it_o under_o his_o own_o hand_n which_o argue_v he_o fight_v against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n that_o set_v down_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o old_a english_a and_o new_a french_a divinity_n as_o he_o call_v it_o he_o quote_v diverse_a of_o those_o article_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o beside_o profess_v himself_o so_o skilful_a in_o the_o statute_n 13._o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v that_o the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o injunction_n be_v by_o they_o aswell_o confirm_v and_o authorize_v as_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n 36._o in_o which_o article_n be_v also_o allow_v and_o ratify_v the_o second_o book_n of_o homily_n and_o holy_a order_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v doctrinal_o deliver_v in_o any_o of_o these_o may_v safe_o be_v call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o for_o the_o present_a i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o the_o book_n of_o article_n only_o and_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o canon_n and_o position_n of_o the_o tridentine_a council_n and_o catechism_n and_o for_o caluines_n doctrine_n with_o that_o special_o which_o he_o have_v deliver_v in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o christian_a institution_n here_o follow_v the_o table_n of_o difference_n b._n c._n 22._o for_o when_o the_o breach_n be_v resolve_v on_o for_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a ease_n of_o henry_n the_o viii_o and_o the_o she_o child_n of_o his_o late_a wife_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o give_v every_o part_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n state_n contentment_n for_o which_o they_o may_v hold_v out_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o affection_n and_o study_v to_o maintain_v the_o breach_n otherwise_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o in_o the_o clearness_n of_o affection_n judgement_n it_o will_v quick_o have_v grow_v together_o again_o and_o then_o the_o author_n thereof_o must_v have_v be_v account_n exclude_v and_o give_v account_n of_o their_o practice_n g._n h._n 22_o howbeit_o henry_n the_o viii_o actual_o indeed_o make_v that_o breach_n with_o rome_n which_o continue_v at_o this_o day_n and_o be_v like_a to_o do_v till_o rome_n by_o her_o reformation_n endeavour_n to_o make_v it_o up_o yet_o they_o certain_o err_v who_o seek_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o only_o in_o he_o and_o in_o his_o time_n or_o fix_v their_o eye_n upon_o his_o person_n &_o quarrel_n look_v not_o up_o to_o the_o state_n and_o course_n of_o former_a age_n for_o as_o no_o wise_a man_n will_v assign_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n to_o some_o accident_n fall_v out_o in_o the_o last_o point_n and_o period_n of_o life_n but_o to_o some_o former_a distemper_n or_o intemperancy_n so_o the_o reason_n of_o unhorse_v the_o pope_n and_o reject_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o general_a applause_n of_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o realm_n have_v be_v so_o long_a an●_n so_o deep_o root_v in_o man_n mind_n be_v not_o to_o be_v search_v for_o in_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a proceed_n of_o henry_n the_o viii_o but_o in_o the_o ancient_a record_n and_o evidence_n of_o our_o histo●ians_n who_o all_o complain_v of_o the_o spur_n and_o gall_v and_o whip_v of_o our_o land_n by_o those_o italian_a rider_n until_o like_o balaams_n ass_n she_o turn_v again_o open_v her_o mouth_n to_o complain_v and_o be_v out_o of_o all_o hope_n of_o relief_n by_o complaint_n cast_v her_o rider_n as_o many_o witness_n we_o have_v hereof_o well_o near_o as_o writer_n since_o the_o last_o 600._o year_n as_o many_o clear_a testimony_n as_o there_o be_v leaf_n in_o mat._n paris_n the_o most_o learned_a and_o sufficient_a writer_n unless_o you_o will_v except_v william_n of_o malmesburie_n that_o those_o time_n afford_v it_o be_v a_o memorable_a speech_n of_o robert_n grosteed_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n who_o live_v 358._o year_n since_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o ix_o celestine_n the_o four_o innocent_a the_o four_o
both_o they_o and_o their_o posterity_n may_v be_v at_o utter_a defiance_n therewith_o and_o so_o have_v overthrow_v and_o profane_v the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o purgatory_n saint_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o get_v they_o chaplin_n that_o may_v both_o dispute_n preach_v and_o write_v against_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n wealth_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o all_o such_o point_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n as_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o those_o church_n and_o religious_a house_n which_o they_o have_v overthrow_v and_o profane_v and_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a for_o those_o chaplain_n by_o some_o show_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o their_o lord_n and_o follower_n be_v so_o willing_a to_o believe_v g._n h._n 23._o the_o abbey_n and_o religious_a house_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o height_n of_o idleness_n the_o mother_n of_o ignorance_n and_o luxury_n within_o themselves_o and_o by_o reason_n thereof_o into_o that_o contempt_n and_o base_a estimation_n with_o the_o people_n that_o it_o be_v high_a time_n some_o blood_n shall_v have_v be_v draw_v from_o their_o swell_a vein_n special_o consider_v the_o little_a use_n the_o commonwealth_n have_v of_o they_o but_o chief_o for_o that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o degenerate_v from_o the_o primitive_a institution_n their_o number_n be_v great_a it_o be_v 645._o monastery_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n account_v the_o priory_n and_o friary_n beside_o chauntery_n and_o free_a chapel_n their_o seat_n common_o in_o the_o fair_a and_o fat_a part_n of_o the_o land_n their_o revenue_n amount_v to_o a_o inestimable_a sum_n as_o in_o the_o original_a book_n thereof_o take_v by_o commission_n and_o give_v to_o the_o king_n may_v appear_v though_o at_o their_o dissolution_n their_o value_n be_v favourable_o and_o far_o under_o rate_v in_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o edward_n the_o first_o a_o statute_n of_o mortmain_n be_v make_v for_o the_o restrain_v of_o that_o excess_n and_o have_v not_o henry_n the_o five_o be_v wise_o divert_v upon_o the_o french_a war_n by_o archbishop_n chich_o he_o have_v in_o all_o likelihood_n prevent_v henry_n the_o eight_o in_o diminish_v if_o not_o demolish_n those_o house_n be_v s●t_v on_o by_o his_o parliament_n hold_v at_o leicester_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o reign_n in_o which_o a_o bill_n be_v exhibit_v complain_v how_o their_o revenue_n give_v for_o devotion_n be_v most_o desorder_o waste_v upon_o hound_n and_o hawk_n and_o horse_n and_o whore_n which_o if_o better_a employ_v will_v serve_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o land_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o king_n and_o suffice_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o fifteen_o earl_n fifteen_o hundred_o knight_n six_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o esquire_n and_o one_o hundred_o almshouse_n for_o relief_n of_o impotent_a and_o disease_a person_n and_o beside_o all_o this_o to_o the_o king_n coffer_n there_o will_v thereby_o yearly_o accrue_v twenty_o thousand_o pound_n and_o to_o speak_v a_o truth_n cardinal_n wolsey_n be_v the_o man_n who_o by_o pull_v down_o the_o small_a both_o show_v and_o make_v a_o way_n to_o the_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_z for_o take_v the_o like_a order_n with_o the_o big_a neither_o do_v he_o think_v his_o hand_n less_o bind_v towards_o his_o own_o subject_n than_o the_o pope_n and_o french_a king_n do_v they_o for_o the_o root_n out_o of_o the_o rich_a and_o powerful_a order_n of_o templar_n through_o christendom_n accuse_v they_o of_o like_a grievous_a and_o unnatural_a offence_n as_o be_v in_o open_a parliament_n lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o our_o monastical_a professor_n upon_o the_o relation_n of_o such_o commissioner_n who_o be_v appoint_v to_o make_v search_n to_o that_o purpose_n no_o marvel_v then_o that_o as_o after_o the_o dissolution_n of_o that_o order_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o edward_n the_o second_o as_o thomas_z de_fw-fr la_fw-fr more_n report_v be_v who_o at_o the_o same_o time_n live_v as_o a_o officer_n in_o his_o court_n the_o heir_n of_o the_o donor_n and_o such_o as_o have_v endow_v they_o with_o land_n reentre_v upon_o those_o part_n of_o their_o ancient_a patrimony_n so_o in_o the_o downfall_n of_o monastery_n the_o lord_n take_v their_o share_n of_o those_o land_n which_o their_o ancestor_n have_v former_o bestow_v to_o piou●●uses_n but_o be_v at_o that_o time_n very_o much_o abuse_v by_o the_o possessor_n but_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o about_z or_o somewhat_o above_o 600._o year_n since_o be_v thrust_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o marry_a churchman_n by_o worcestershire_n dunstan_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n so_o that_o if_o every_o bird_n have_v his_o feather_n at_o their_o dissolution_n the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o land_n have_v return_v to_o the_o clergy_n or_o at_o least_o their_o impropriation_n which_o be_v as_o improper_a to_o they_o though_o they_o hold_v they_o by_o dispensation_n as_o now_o it_o may_v well_o be_v dispute_v they_o be_v to_o the_o 75._o possessor_n of_o they_o a_o part_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o be_v at_o defiance_n with_o your_o church_n that_o they_o be_v profess_v roman_a catholic_n and_o in_o queen_n mary_n day_n among_o all_o those_o that_o entire_o embrace_v that_o religion_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o be_v find_v that_o can_v be_v draw_v to_o disgorge_v those_o sweet_a morsel_n they_o have_v devour_v or_o to_o make_v restitution_n of_o a_o foot_n of_o land_n though_o the_o queen_n herself_o the_o rather_o to_o draw_v they_o on_o have_v offer_v all_o she_o hold_v in_o possession_n then_o be_v your_o doctrine_n of_o good_a work_n your_o invocation_n saint_n your_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o your_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a restore_v which_o be_v the_o ground_n you_o say_v of_o those_o religious_a house_n yet_o the_o land_n which_o have_v be_v their_o maintenance_n be_v not_o restore_v and_o as_o the_o reviue_n of_o those_o doctrine_n can_v not_o serve_v to_o give_v new_a life_n unto_o the_o carcase_n of_o those_o ruin_a house_n so_o the_o ruine_n of_o those_o house_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n as_o you_o pretend_v of_o the_o impugn_n of_o those_o doctrine_n since_o they_o be_v impugn_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o own_o writer_n by_o the_o waldense_n by_o the_o albingenses_n by_o wicliffe_n by_o husse_n by_o luther_n by_o zuinglius_fw-la by_o calvin_n before_o those_o house_n fall_v and_o continue_v for_o the_o most_o part_n during_o all_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o six_o article_n common_o call_v the_o whip_n with_o the_o six_o cord_n and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o find_v he_o alter_v nothing_o except_v the_o take_n down_o of_o monastery_n and_o the_o pope_n authority_n but_o only_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o the_o sing_n and_o read_v divine_a service_n in_o our_o mother_n tongue_n so_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o any_o indifferent_a judgement_n that_o the_o contradict_v of_o those_o doctrine_n rather_o cause_v the_o ruin_n of_o those_o house_n than_o their_o ruin_n as_o you_o will_v bear_v we_o in_o hand_n the_o contradict_v of_o those_o doctrine_n and_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n not_o by_o show_n of_o scripture_n but_o by_o scripture_n itself_o to_o prove_v their_o unsoundnesse_n but_o a_o hard_a i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v for_o his_o holiness_n chaplain_n from_o thence_o to_o prove_v their_o soundness_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o they_o be_v now_o defend_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n howbeit_o you_o be_v as_o willing_a to_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o for_o the_o cold_a advantage_n you_o reap_v by_o they_o special_o by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o any_o can_v be_v upon_o the_o like_a reason_n to_o believe_v the_o contrary_n b._n c._n 24._o to_o the_o commons_o be_v give_v great_a hope_n of_o relief_n for_o their_o poverty_n ease_n of_o subsidy_n and_o the_o burden_n of_o so_o great_a a_o clergy_n and_o many_o other_o nothing_o goodly_a gay_a nothing_o and_o for_o the_o present_a they_o shall_v have_v liberty_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o common_a law_n that_o be_v leave_v to_o live_v by_o such_o law_n as_o themselves_o list_v to_o make_v and_o to_o contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o although_o it_o be_v for_o their_o benefit_n every_o way_n yet_o because_o it_o cross_v their_o affection_n like_o wayward_a child_n they_o can_v never_o abide_v it_o and_o be_v not_o this_o reason_n enough_o for_o they_o to_o hold_v out_o the_o breach_n and_o to_o study_v scripture_n themselves_o that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o confute_v confession_n they_o satisfaction_n penance_n and_o to_o declaim_v against_o that_o tyranny_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whereby_o
themselves_o and_o their_o forefather_n have_v be_v keep_v in_o awe_n and_o testify_v obedience_n unto_o god_n and_o their_o king_n g._n h._n 24._o the_o commons_o may_v have_v be_v disburden_v of_o their_o subsidy_n have_v those_o revenue_n and_o treasure_n which_o come_v or_o may_v have_v come_v to_o the_o crown_n by_o the_o downfall_n of_o monastery_n be_v employ_v as_o they_o may_v have_v be_v the_o plate_n and_o wire_n of_o gold_n of_o beckets_n only_a shrine_n together_o with_o the_o pearl_n and_o precious_a stone_n of_o inestimable_a value_n fill_v two_o great_a chest_n but_o god_n so_o order_v the_o matter_n for_o their_o lay_n of_o sacrilegious_a hand_n as_o it_o may_v be_v think_v upon_o those_o ten_o which_o by_o himself_o be_v consecrate_v to_o himself_o that_o neither_o it_o nor_o the_o rest_n prosper_v neither_o be_v the_o king_n thereby_o much_o enrich_v nor_o the_o commons_o relieve_v it_o be_v like_o the_o dead_a fly_n in_o the_o box_n of_o ointment_n or_o the_o coloquintida_n in_o the_o prophet_n pottage_n now_o for_o the_o people_n liberty_n in_o make_v law_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n to_o live_v as_o they_o list_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n fond_o surmise_v and_o publish_v of_o you_o not_o promise_v by_o the_o state_n nor_o demand_v or_o expect_v by_o they_o the_o law_n ecclesiastical_a be_v in_o king_n henry_n time_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n appoint_v to_o be_v compile_v and_o digest_v by_o a_o certain_a company_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o divine_v join_v in_o commission_n with_o civil_a and_o canon-lawyer_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 32._o but_o this_o work_n be_v le●t_o imperfect_a by_o the_o death_n of_o that_o king_n be_v afterward_o finish_v in_o the_o day_n and_o by_o the_o command_n of_o his_o son_n edward_n which_o myself_o have_v see_v though_o by_o the_o untimely_a death_n of_o that_o king_n also_o it_o never_o yet_o receive_v public_a allowance_n and_o for_o other_o law_n as_o the_o world_n know_v they_o neither_o can_v nor_o can_v make_v any_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o king_n and_o last_o how_o the_o law_n of_o your_o church_n cross_v their_o affection_n let_v their_o often_o and_o dangerous_a rebellion_n for_o the_o restore_n of_o they_o testify_v there_o be_v none_o in_o truth_n more_o fit_v to_o the_o humour_n of_o a_o natural_a mind_a man_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o that_o a_o man_n of_o no_o religion_n and_o like_o white_a paper_n or_o sponge_v table_n apt_a to_o receive_v any_o impression_n will_v soon_o embrace_v you_o than_o any_o other_o in_o the_o world_n from_o this_o you_o digress_v to_o their_o study_v of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o confute_v confession_n satisfaction_n penance_n and_o to_o declaim_v against_o that_o tyranny_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o themselves_o and_o their_o forefather_n have_v be_v keep_v in_o awe_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o their_o king_n for_o their_o study_v of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o great_a eyesore_n to_o you_o because_o thereby_o your_o malice_n in_o withhold_v your_o follower_n from_o read_v they_o and_o withal_o your_o burdensome_a tradition_n thrust_v upon_o they_o for_o your_o own_o honour_n and_o gain_v but_o to_o their_o pain_n and_o grievance_n be_v clear_o discover_v and_o discern_v from_o that_o which_o before_o you_o call_v eternal_a truth_n but_o to_o they_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o profitable_a or_o to_o their_o guide_n more_o comfortable_a so_o it_o be_v do_v with_o reverence_n and_o sobriety_n and_o as_o our_o preface_n to_o the_o bishop_n bible_n exhort_v not_o so_o much_o to_o dispute_v and_o contradict_v as_o to_o learn_v and_o obey_v as_o be_v a_o practice_n which_o both_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n special_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o diverse_a homily_n often_o and_o earnest_o exhort_v their_o hair_n unto_o and_o for_o the_o confutation_n of_o those_o point_n you_o name_n i_o be_o of_o opinion_n and_o i_o think_v not_o without_o reason_n that_o many_o of_o our_o people_n be_v better_a able_a by_o scripture_n to_o confute_v they_o as_o they_o be_v now_o hold_v and_o use_v among_o you_o than_o your_o great_a bishop_n and_o cardinal_n be_v from_o thence_o able_a to_o prove_v they_o of_o who_o some_o have_v not_o stick_v to_o profess_v that_o they_o think_v that_o time_n which_o they_o pass_v in_o read_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o unprofitable_o spend_v prefer_v tully_n oration_n before_o paul_n epistle_n and_o aristotle_n ethike_n before_o solomon_n proverbe_n b._n c._n 25._o to_o the_o clergiemen_n that_o will_v turn_v with_o the_o time_n beside_o the_o possibility_n of_o present_a preferment_n by_o the_o alteration_n be_v give_v short_o after_o leave_n to_o marry_v &_o to_o purchase_v and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o the_o laity_n and_o what_o wife_n carnal_a mind_a monk_n or_o priest_n will_v not_o with_o might_n and_o main_a keep_v open_v the_o breach_n after_o he_o be_v once_o plunge_v in_o it_o rather_o than_o to_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o forgo_v so_o please_v a_o commodity_n hence_o do_v arise_v a_o necessity_n of_o speak_v and_o write_v against_o vow_n vrginitie_n poverty_n fast_v pray_v watch_v obedience_n and_o all_o that_o austerity_n of_o life_n which_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n require_v in_o a_o monastical_a and_o priestly_a conversation_n g._n h._n 25._o little_a hope_n be_v there_o give_v for_o the_o present_a to_o the_o churchman_n that_o yield_v to_o the_o king_n for_o matter_n of_o preferment_n since_o the_o abbot_n and_o prior_n be_v not_o only_o turn_v out_o of_o door_n but_o their_o house_n raze_v and_o their_o good_n and_o land_n confiscate_v and_o for_o the_o bishop_n none_o of_o their_o place_n thereby_o fall_v void_a they_o all_o rochester_n only_a except_v joint_o concur_v with_o the_o king_n in_o cast_v off_o the_o romish_a yoke_n and_o for_o their_o marry_n &_o purchase_v neither_o of_o they_o be_v permit_v during_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n who_o live_v &_o reign_v somewhat_o above_o 14._o year_n after_o the_o breach_n with_o rome_n howbeit_o if_o we_o may_v credit_n mr._n cambden_n a_o unpartial_a antiquary_n churchman_n be_v not_o forbid_v marriage_n in_o england_n till_o the_o year_n 1102._o then_o anselm_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n say_v he_o offer_v violence_n both_o to_o nature_n and_o to_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o write_v upon_o occasion_n of_o one_o ealphegus_fw-la a_o priest_n famous_a for_o his_o learning_n who_o be_v marry_v and_o dwell_v in_o the_o south_n part_n of_o devonshire_n and_o further_o he_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o henry_n of_o huntindon_n touch_v that_o act_n of_o anselm_n he_o forbadwive_n to_o the_o english_a priest_n be_v never_o before_o forbid_v which_o to_o some_o seem_v a_o thing_n very_o decent_a to_o other_o as_o dangerous_a lest_o while_o they_o aim_v to_o a_o purity_n above_o their_o reach_n they_o may_v fall_v into_o horrible_a impurity_n to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o christ_n name_n and_o their_o profession_n those_o word_n of_o cambden_n before_o quote_v together_o with_o these_o of_o huntindon_n by_o he_o allege_v be_v command_v to_o be_v raze_v by_o the_o spanish_a index_n vider●_n but_o they_o may_v aswell_o have_v raze_v those_o of_o the●i_n ●i_z in_o platina_n avouch_v that_o he_o see_v great_a reason_n why_o priest_n shall_v be_v restrain_v of_o marriage_n but_o great_a why_o it_o shall_v be_v restore_v they_o or_o those_o of_o cassander_n by_o that_o over_o rigorous_a and_o unseasonable_a constitution_n speak_v of_o restraint_n of_o marriage_n in_o churchman_n we_o see_v much_o grievous_a and_o abominable_a scandal_n to_o have_v arisen_a in_o the_o church_n or_o those_o of_o mantuan_a touch_v saint_n ●_o hillary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n in_o france_n non_fw-la tibi_fw-la progeny_n nocuit_fw-la non_fw-la obfuit_fw-la uxor_fw-la legitimo_fw-la coniuncta_fw-la toro_fw-it or_o last_o those_o of_o the_o same_o poet_n speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o nazianzen_n praesule_fw-la patre_fw-la satus_fw-la nam_fw-la tunc_fw-la idiura_fw-la sinebant_fw-la non_fw-la horruit_fw-la illâ_fw-la tempestate_fw-la deus_fw-la thalamos_fw-la cunabula_fw-la toedas_fw-la and_o in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o father_n of_o basil_n and_o gregory_n nyssen_n tutius_fw-la esse_fw-la volunt_fw-la qua_fw-la lex_fw-la divina_fw-la sinebat_fw-la isse_fw-la viâ_fw-la veterumque_fw-la sequi_fw-la vestigia_fw-la patrum_fw-la quorum_fw-la vita_fw-la fuit_fw-la melior_fw-la cum_fw-la coniuge_fw-la quam_fw-la nunc_fw-la nostra_fw-la sit_fw-la exclusis_fw-la thalamis_fw-la &_o coni●gis_n usu._n and_o if_o marry_v be_v allow_v they_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n but_o they_o shall_v withal_o be_v allow_v purchase_v as_o they_o be_v and_o always_o have_v
doctrine_n whereof_o thou_o speak_v be_v but_o we_o may_v true_o answer_v both_o in_o their_o defence_n and_o our_o own_o novitas_fw-la nos_fw-la non_fw-la sumus_fw-la novatores_fw-la sed_fw-la vos_fw-la estis_fw-la veteratores_fw-la it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o affect_v novelty_n but_o you_o the_o counterfeit_a face_n of_o antiquity_n thereby_o labour_v to_o make_v a_o peace_n and_o to_o strike_v a_o league_n with_o we_o as_o the_o gibeonite_n do_v with_o joshua_n 5._o deceive_v he_o by_o the_o show_n of_o old_a sack_n old_a bottle_n old_a shoe_n old_a garment_n and_o bread_n that_o be_v dry_a and_o mouldy_a you_o far_o charge_v we_o with_o comfort_v one_o another_o in_o report_v the_o good_a success_n which_o schismatic_n and_o rebel_n happen_v to_o have_v against_o their_o governor_n whereas_o the_o very_a enemy_n of_o those_o who_o you_o call_v schismatic_n and_o rebel_n have_v be_v many_o time_n enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o good_a success_n to_o have_v come_v not_o so_o much_o from_o good_a fortune_n as_o from_o the_o extraordinary_a hand_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o have_v be_v constrain_v to_o cry_v out_o with_o pharaoh_n sorcerer_n the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v here_o at_o the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n the_o inhabitant_n be_v bring_v to_o great_a want_n as_o thuanus_n report_v it_o every_o tide_n be_v bring_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o shellfish_n he_o call_v they_o surdones_n or_o pectunculo_n which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v little_a scallop_n or_o muscle_n and_o that_o in_o great_a abundance_n for_o the_o relieve_n of_o the_o besiege_a they_o have_v never_o be_v see_v upon_o that_o coast_n before_o that_o time_n nor_o since_o of_o ziska_n the_o bohemian_a aeneas_n silvius_n afterward_o pius_n the_o second_o be_v pius_n indeed_o before_o he_o be_v so_o in_o name_n record_v it_o to_o posterity_n that_o eleven_o time_n in_o fight_a battle_n he_o return_v conqueror_n out_o of_o the_o field_n and_o be_v himself_o never_o foil_v the_o duke_n of_o medina_n general_n of_o the_o spanish_a invincible_a navy_n send_v against_o we_o for_o the_o root_n of_o we_o out_o in_o the_o year_n 1588._o and_o bless_v by_o the_o apostolical_a benediction_n when_o he_o see_v how_o the_o wind_n and_o the_o wave_n and_o the_o star_n in_o their_o order_n fight_v against_o they_o profess_v he_o think_v jesus_n christ_n be_v turn_v lutheran_n hispanus_n ipse_fw-la say_v our_o famous_a annalist_n cladem_fw-la acceptam_fw-la elizab._n ut_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la composito_fw-la animo_fw-la tulti_fw-la deoque_fw-la et_fw-la sanctis_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la tristior_fw-la fuerit_fw-la gratias_fw-la egit_fw-la et_fw-la per_fw-la hispaniam_fw-la agi_fw-la iussit_fw-la the_o king_n of_o spain_n himself_o take_v the_o blow_n patient_o as_o give_v by_o god_n and_o both_o himself_o give_v thanks_n and_o command_v his_o subject_n through_o spain_n to_o do_v the_o like_a that_o it_o fall_v no_o heavy_a in_o the_o consideration_n of_o which_o admirable_a success_n we_o may_v apply_v that_o to_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n which_o be_v write_v of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n o_o nimium_fw-la dilecta_fw-la deo_fw-la cui_fw-la militat_fw-la equor_fw-la et_fw-la coniurati_fw-la veniunt_fw-la ad_fw-la classica_fw-la venti_fw-la upon_o that_o occasion_n and_o not_o without_o reason_n be_v some_o coin_n stamp_v with_o this_o inscription_n glory_n to_o god_n alone_o other_o with_o this_o man_n propose_v god_n dispose_v and_o last_o other_o with_o this_o impius_fw-la fugit_fw-la nemine_fw-la sequente_fw-la which_o all_o tend_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o it_o be_v god_n fight_v for_o we_o in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o bizarro_n a_o italian_a and_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v find_v no_o protestant_n speak_v of_o our_o late_a renown_a sovereign_n etc._n quod_fw-la verò_fw-la ad_fw-la i_o attinet_fw-la id_fw-la tantum_fw-la in_o praesentia_fw-la dixerim_fw-la elizabetham_fw-la britanniae_fw-la reginam_fw-la singulari_fw-la dei_fw-la ope_v max._n bonitate_fw-la ac_fw-la providentia_fw-la gubernari_fw-la quamuis_fw-la enim_fw-la ipsamet_fw-la egregiâ_fw-la virtute_fw-la ac_fw-la sapientia_fw-la praedita_fw-la sit_fw-la et_fw-la apud_fw-la se_fw-la consiliarios_fw-la habeat_fw-la summo_fw-la iudicio_fw-la summaque_fw-la prudentia_fw-la prestantes_fw-la tamen_fw-la fatendum_fw-la est_fw-la humana_fw-la consilia_fw-la persaepe_fw-la inania_fw-la reddi_fw-la nisi_fw-la ea_fw-la divinitù_fw-fr regantur_fw-la id_fw-la vero_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la esse_fw-la iudicem_fw-la superiorum_fw-la temporum_fw-la facit_fw-la recordatio_fw-la cum_fw-la cogito_fw-la quot_fw-la interni_fw-la externique_fw-la host_n huic_fw-la ope_v reginae_fw-la insidiati_fw-la sint_fw-la et_fw-la quam_fw-la mirabiliter_fw-la illam_fw-la deus_fw-la ab_fw-la eorum_fw-la insidijs_fw-la atque_fw-la conatibus_fw-la eripuerit_fw-la touch_v myself_o i_o will_v only_o say_v this_o for_o the_o present_a that_o elizabeth_n queen_n of_o britanny_n have_v be_v hitherto_o preserve_v by_o the_o singular_a goodness_n and_o providence_n of_o almighty_a god_n for_o though_o herself_o be_v endue_v with_o singular_a virtue_n and_o wisdom_n and_o she_o have_v about_o her_o counselor_n of_o excellent_a judgement_n and_o foresight_n in_o the_o manage_n of_o her_o affair_n yet_o must_v we_o confess_v that_o humane_a counsel_n be_v often_o frustrate_v unless_o they_o be_v guide_v from_o heaven_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v so_o think_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o latter_a time_n enforce_v i_o when_o i_o call_v to_o mind_n how_o many_o homebred_a and_o foreign_a enemy_n have_v lay_v in_o wait_n for_o the_o life_n of_o that_o virtuous_a queen_n and_o how_o miraculous_o god_n have_v free_v she_o from_o all_o their_o plot_n and_o assault_n you_o go_v forward_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o lawful_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v contemn_v as_o a_o rag_n of_o popery_n and_o caluin_n institution_n cry_v up_o by_o voice_n in_o court_n and_o country_n in_o hope_n it_o may_v one_o day_n serve_v the_o like_a turn_n in_o england_n as_o it_o have_v do_v in_o geneva_n as_o if_o geneva_n have_v not_o discharge_v herself_o of_o the_o claim_n of_o her_o bishop_n and_o duke_n before_o calvin_n compile_v his_o institution_n or_o as_o if_o we_o know_v not_o that_o caluin_n institution_n make_v nothing_o against_o the_o government_n of_o lawful_a magistrate_n or_o if_o it_o be_v a_o book_n so_o dangerous_a as_o you_o will_v make_v it_o a_o wonder_n it_o be_v to_o i_o that_o neither_o yourself_o nor_o any_o as_o yet_o of_o that_o side_n have_v so_o much_o as_o undertake_v a_o through_o confutation_n of_o it_o must_v it_o need_v be_v that_o all_o who_o embrace_v his_o pain_n and_o learning_n in_o those_o institution_n intend_v the_o subversion_n of_o the_o state_n or_o present_o contemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n your_o old_a master_n archbishop_n whitegift_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n who_o maintain_v to_o his_o utmost_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o give_v he_o calvin_n his_o due_a also_o labour_v always_o where_o any_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o countenance_v his_o write_n with_o calvin_n authority_n and_o special_o out_o of_o that_o book_n which_o you_o most_o mislike_v yield_v he_o the_o title_n of_o a_o famous_a and_o learned_a man_n nay_o even_o in_o the_o use_n of_o thing_n indifferent_a he_o give_v this_o testimony_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o moderation_n 4._o if_o mr._n calvin_n be_v alive_a say_v he_o and_o right_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o our_o church_n and_o controversy_n true_o i_o very_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v condemn_v your_o do_n and_o i_o be_o the_o rather_o induce_v to_o think_v so_o because_o i_o understand_v he_o to_o have_v allow_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o english_a church_n be_v at_o geneva_n which_o you_o altogether_o mislike_v to_o this_o archbishop_n testimony_n i_o can_v add_v the_o opinion_n of_o his_o predecessor_n cranmer_n grindal_n and_o parker_n gather_v out_o of_o their_o several_a epistle_n to_o calvin_n and_o other_o write_n but_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o that_o of_o bishop_n jewel_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o neglect_v or_o contemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o a_o relic_n or_o rag_n of_o popery_n as_o that_o the_o confession_n extant_a in_o his_o apology_n for_o our_o church_n be_v register_v as_o the_o authentical_a doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n as_o well_o in_o the_o body_n as_o in_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n but_o archbishop_n 31._o whitegift_n go_v far_o make_v both_o his_o apology_n &_o the_o defence_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o by_o this_o archbishop_n authority_n be_v it_o order_v that_o those_o his_o book_n shall_v be_v buy_v of_o every_o parish_n and_o chain_v in_o their_o church_n to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o people_n at_o vacant_a time_n yet_o this_o worthy_a bishop_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o apology_n 4._o
term_v calvin_n a_o reverend_a father_n and_o worthy_a ornament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o touch_v his_o book_n of_o christian_a institution_n in_o particular_a m._n hooker_n who_o be_v well_o know_a not_o to_o have_v contemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o a_o rag_n of_o popery_n thus_o write_v two_o thing_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o calvin_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n of_o principal_a moment_n there_o be_v which_o have_v deserve_o procure_v he_o honour_n through_o the_o world_n the_o one_o his_o exceed_a pain_n in_o compose_v the_o institution_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o other_o his_o no_o less_o industrious_a travail_n for_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o the_o same_o institution_n in_o which_o two_o thing_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v that_o afterward_o bestow_v their_o labour_n he_o gain_v the_o advantage_n of_o prejudice_n against_o they_o if_o they_o gainesayed_n and_o of_o glory_n above_o they_o if_o they_o consent_v then_o which_o i_o can_v imagine_v what_o can_v be_v utter_v more_o effectual_o thus_o malice_n will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o see_v that_o worth_n in_o calvin_n and_o his_o write_n which_o these_o worthy_n profess_v and_o publish_v who_o be_v notwithstanding_o more_o earnest_a and_o zealous_a patroness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o yourself_o but_o it_o may_v be_v you_o think_v it_o will_v be_v credit_n enough_o for_o you_o only_o to_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o so_o stout_a and_o renown_a a_o champion_n howbeit_o to_o hunt_v after_o applause_n by_o dishonour_v the_o name_n of_o famous_a man_n be_v hold_v by_o s._n jerome_n and_o be_v account_v by_o all_o good_a and_o wise_a man_n but_o a_o trick_n of_o vain_a and_o childish_a arrogancy_n there_o be_v less_o comparison_n betwixt_o carier_n and_o calvin_n than_o calvin_n and_o stapleton_n who_o notwithstanding_o 1._o a_o great_a divine_a and_o public_a professor_n of_o one_o of_o our_o own_o university_n compare_v together_o profess_v there_o be_v more_o sound_a divinity_n in_o caluin_n little_a finger_n than_o stapletons_n head_n or_o whole_a body_n i_o will_v conclude_v my_o answer_n to_o this_o section_n with_o the_o word_n of_o a_o grave_a 509._o bishop_n yet_o live_v no_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o his_o write_n show_v calvin_n be_v so_o well_o know_v say_v he_o to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v learned_a or_o wise_a for_o his_o great_a pain_n and_o good_a labour_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o a_o few_o snarl_a friar_n can_v impeach_v his_o name_n though_o you_o will_v never_o so_o wretched_o pervert_v his_o word_n thus_o much_o of_o calvin_n and_o his_o write_n for_o i_o dare_v not_o go_v so_o far_o as_o thurius_n praeter_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la post_fw-la christi_fw-la tempora_fw-la chartas_fw-la huic_fw-la peperere_fw-la viro_fw-la saecula_fw-la nulla_fw-la parem_fw-la b._n c._n 29._o these_o reason_n or_o rather_o corruption_n of_o state_n have_v so_o confound_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o slander_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o have_v turn_v man_n brain_n and_o make_v the_o multitude_n on_o slander_n both_o side_n like_o two_o fool_n which_o be_v set_v back_o to_o back_o do_v think_v they_o be_v as_o far_o asunder_o as_o the_o horizon_n be_v they_o look_v upon_o but_o if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o about_o command_v they_o to_o turn_v each_o of_o they_o but_o a_o quarter_n about_o and_o look_v both_o one_o way_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o your_o majesty_n and_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n they_o shall_v present_o see_v themselves_o to_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o near_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n than_o the_o puritanical_a preacher_n on_o they_o both_o side_n do_v make_v they_o believe_v they_o be_v i_o can_v not_o in_o the_o brevity_n of_o this_o discourse_n descend_v into_o particular_n but_o if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o command_v i_o or_o any_o other_o honest_a man_n that_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o understand_v and_o observe_v learning_n all_o side_n free_o and_o plain_o to_o set_v down_o the_o prove_v difference_n betwixt_o caluinisme_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o law_n and_o then_o to_o show_v locos_fw-la concessos_fw-la and_o locos_fw-la controversos_fw-la betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o distance_n that_o will_v be_v leave_v betwixt_o for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n may_v by_o your_o majesty_n be_v easy_o compound_v g._n h._n 29._o whether_o reason_n or_o rather_o corruption_n of_o state_n have_v not_o breed_v confusion_n rather_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o of_o england_n let_v rome_n infinite_a ambition_n and_o insatiable_a covetousness_n mask_v under_o pretence_n of_o doctrine_n testify_v as_o long_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n keep_v they_o to_o their_o profession_n in_o the_o gain_n of_o soul_n to_o god_n matter_n go_v well_o for_o doctrine_n but_o when_o once_o they_o turn_v statist_n &_o in_o stead_n of_o gain_v soul_n cast_v about_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n than_o be_v their_o friar_n and_o flatterer_n find_v who_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o shape_n and_o frame_v her_o doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o model_n of_o state_n before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v call_v in_o the_o memory_n of_o some_o yet_o live_a it_o be_v make_v evident_a by_o my_o learned_a brother_n dr._n carleton_n in_o his_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n against_o the_o tridentines_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o justify_v faith_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v now_o public_o teach_v and_o profess_v with_o us._n if_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o will_v understand_v her_o chief_a prelate_n not_o those_o friar_n and_o flatterer_n which_o belong_v rather_o to_o her_o court_n then_o her_o church_n from_o whence_o then_o arise_v this_o confusion_n of_o doctrine_n which_o follow_v after_o but_o only_o from_o that_o corruption_n of_o state_n which_o go_v before_o and_o yet_o it_o can_v but_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o as_o our_o body_n first_o warm_v our_o clothes_n and_o then_o our_o clothes_n serve_v to_o keep_v warm_a our_o body_n so_o the_o corruption_n of_o state_n first_o bring_v forth_o this_o confusion_n of_o doctrine_n but_o be_v bring_v forth_o the_o daughter_n serve_v to_o nourish_v and_o maintain_v the_o mother_n now_o for_o the_o confound_a of_o our_o doctrine_n we_o answer_v with_o s._n paul_n 3._o if_o our_o gospel_n say_v he_o be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v so_o we_o if_o our_o doctrine_n be_v confound_v it_o be_v to_o they_o 4._o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v confound_v and_o blind_v lest_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n shall_v shine_v unto_o they_o the_o second_o thing_n which_o you_o charge_v we_o with_o be_v the_o slander_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v your_o romanist_n clear_a of_o that_o accusation_n or_o dare_v any_o man_n of_o judgement_n and_o learning_n discharge_v they_o do_v not_o 5._o pererius_n accuse_v catharinus_n for_o call_v that_o a_o intolerable_a and_o desperate_a opinion_n of_o luther_n touch_v reprobation_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v the_o same_o opinion_n and_o none_o other_o as_o pererius_n confess_v then_o sentantia_fw-la s._n augustine_n maintain_v touch_v the_o same_o point_n do_v not_o 7._o reynolds_n our_o country_n man_n howbeit_o otherwise_o malicious_o bitter_a against_o calvin_n special_o in_o his_o caluino_n turkism_n in_o his_o judgement_n free_a calvin_n from_o the_o imputation_n of_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o latter_a year_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v still_o press_v upon_o he_o both_o by_o yourself_o and_o other_o do_v not_o 19_o bellarmine_n clear_v he_o from_o make_v the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n to_o be_v from_o himself_o and_o not_o from_o the_o first_o with_o which_o error_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v charge_v by_o trinitate_fw-la genebrard_n by_o dubitantius_fw-la lyndan_n by_o baptista_n canisius_n and_o for_o our_o own_o church_n do_v not_o 48._o bristol_n affirm_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v prove_v by_o experience_n to_o be_v indeed_o no_o religion_n do_v not_o 1._o allen_n speak_v of_o our_o sacrament_n service_n and_o sermon_n call_v they_o thing_n which_o assure_o procure_v damnation_n do_v not_o reynolds_n in_o the_o book_n before_o name_v endeavour_n to_o make_v our_o religion_n worse_o than_o the_o turkish_a not_o distinguish_v betwixt_o caluinisme_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o
one_o example_n for_o all_o may_v be_v that_o lewd_a libeller_n who_o in_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o his_o libel_n exclaim_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v no_o faith_n no_o hope_n no_o charity_n no_o repentance_n no_o justification_n no_o church_n no_o altar_n no_o sacrifice_n no_o priest_n no_o religion_n no_o christ._n what_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o these_o intemperate_a spirit_n if_o they_o speak_v of_o malice_n than_o i_o say_v with_o michael_n the_o archangel_n 9_o the_o lord_n rebuke_v they_o but_o if_o they_o speak_v of_o ignorance_n than_o i_o say_v with_o the_o holy_a martyr_n s._n steven_n 60._o lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n or_o with_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 34._o father_n forgive_v they_o they_o wot_v not_o what_o they_o do_v now_o for_o our_o slander_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o you_o or_o any_o other_o shall_v produce_v the_o like_a assertion_n out_o of_o any_o writer_n among_o we_o of_o note_n and_o credit_n i_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o yield_v far_a credit_n to_o your_o assertion_n then_o as_o yet_o i_o find_v reason_n i_o shall_v for_o the_o residue_n of_o this_o section_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o my_o marginal_a note_n as_o deserve_v in_o my_o judgement_n no_o better_a or_o other_o answer_n b._n c._n 30._o but_o perhaps_o there_o be_v so_o great_a opposition_n in_o matter_n of_o state_n that_o although_o the_o doctrine_n may_v be_v compound_v yet_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o hear_v of_o agreement_n and_o if_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o state_n which_o there_o be_v in_o beginning_n and_o continue_v all_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n there_o be_v as_o little_a hope_n now_o that_o your_o majesty_n shall_v hearken_v unto_o reconciliation_n as_o then_o be_v that_o king_n again_o henry_n the_o viii_o or_o queen_n elizabeth_n will_v but_o when_o i_o do_v with_o the_o great_a respect_n i_o can_v consider_v the_o state_n of_o your_o majesty_n your_o lord_n your_o commons_o and_o your_o clergy_n i_o do_v see_v as_o little_a cause_n in_o hold_v out_o in_o reason_n of_o state_n as_o i_o do_v in_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n g._n h._n 30._o from_o the_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n you_o pass_v to_o thereason_n of_o state_n in_o which_o if_o your_o reason_n be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n or_o truth_n then_o in_o the_o former_a his_o majesty_n his_o lord_n his_o commons_o his_o clergy_n have_v no_o more_o reason_n to_o hearken_v to_o reconciliation_n with_o rome_n than_o king_n henry_n or_o queen_n elizabeth_n or_o the_o subject_n in_o their_o time_n have_v which_o he_o that_o look_v not_o through_o the_o spectacle_n of_o a_o prejudicate_a opinion_n will_v as_o easy_o discover_v as_o you_o confident_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n b._n c._n 31._o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o although_o he_o have_v write_v that_o book_n against_o the_o schism_n of_o luther_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a for_o which_o he_o discern_v the_o title_n of_o defensor_fw-la fidei_fw-la yet_o when_o he_o give_v way_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o anne_n bullen_n and_o the_o flattery_n of_o his_o cath._n favourite_n and_o see_v he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o have_v his_o will_n he_o exclude_v the_o pope_n and_o make_v himself_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o so_o he_o may_v not_o only_o except_v dispense_v with_o himself_o for_o his_o lust_n but_o also_o supply_v his_o excess_n with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v then_o very_o rich_a but_o when_o he_o see_v god_n bless_v he_o not_o neither_o in_o his_o wive_n nor_o in_o his_o thrive_a he_o be_v weary_a of_o his_o supremacy_n before_o he_o die_v and_o wish_v himself_o in_o the_o church_n again_o but_o he_o die_v in_o the_o curse_n of_o his_o father_n who_o not_o foundation_n he_o overthrow_v and_o have_v neither_o child_n to_o honour_v he_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o a_o tomb_n upon_o his_o grave_n to_o remember_v he_o which_o some_o man_n take_v to_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n g._n h._n 31._o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o write_v a_o 20._o book_n indeed_o or_o at_o least_o a_o book_n be_v in_o his_o name_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n against_o luther_n as_o mr._n doctor_n may_v have_v learn_v if_o no_o where_o else_o yet_o out_o of_o cardinal_n beauties_n apology_n but_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o he_o call_v apostolic_a i_o have_v not_o meet_v with_o any_o and_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o his_o mistake_n of_o the_o subject_n handle_v in_o that_o book_n himself_o never_o meet_v with_o it_o as_o for_o the_o title_n which_o king_n henry_n receive_v the_o world_n be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o liberal_a his_o holiness_n be_v in_o bestow_v title_n where_o he_o expect_v some_o great_a advantage_n stick_v down_o a_o feather_n that_o he_o may_v quiet_o carry_v away_o the_o goose_n 1580._o thus_o do_v he_o give_v charles_n the_o emperor_n near_o about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o title_n of_o defensor_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la for_o direct_v a_o writ_n of_o outlawrie_n against_o luther_n whereupon_o at_o the_o emperor_n be_v here_o in_o england_n those_o verse_n be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o guildhall_n in_o london_n over_o the_o door_n of_o their_o council_n chamber_n where_o they_o yet_o remain_v carolus_n henricus_fw-la vivant_fw-la defensor_fw-la uterque_fw-la henricus_fw-la fidei_fw-la carolus_n ecclesiae_fw-la and_o in_o the_o bull_n by_o which_o leo_n the_o ten_o confirm_v this_o title_n to_o the_o king_n subscribe_v with_o his_o own_o name_n and_o the_o name_n of_o five_o and_o twenty_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n it_o appear_v that_o their_o chief_a scope_n of_o honour_v he_o with_o this_o title_n be_v to_o tie_v he_o and_o his_o posterity_n fast_o to_o that_o see_v but_o as_o a_o learned_a and_o grave_a prelate_n of_o our_o own_o have_v well_o observe_v be_v the_o high_a priest_n for_o that_o year_n not_o so_o in_o the_o next_o 55._o he_o foretell_v by_o way_n of_o prophecy_n what_o the_o king_n of_o england_n shall_v be_v which_o we_o find_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o kingdom_n most_o true_o and_o happy_o accomplish_v in_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_n now_o reign_v who_o have_v to_o the_o utmost_a defend_v the_o true_o christian_n and_o catholic_a faith_n by_o his_o pen_n and_o will_v no_o doubt_n be_v as_o ready_a to_o do_v it_o when_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v with_o his_o sword_n and_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o for_o fear_v of_o cross_v your_o imaginary_a reconciliation_n you_o will_v with_o bellarmine_n tell_v we_o that_o his_o majesty_n in_o present_a as_o undeserued_o retain_v that_o title_n as_o king_n henry_n receive_v it_o deserve_o who_o afterward_o notwithstanding_o as_o deep_o incur_v his_o holiness_n disfavour_v aswell_o by_o call_v into_o question_n that_o title_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v assume_v to_o themselves_o of_o pastors_n universal_a s._n peter_n successor_n and_o christ_n vicar_n as_o by_o resume_v to_o himself_o that_o title_n which_o some_o of_o the_o pope_n have_v yield_v his_o predecessor_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o lucius_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n in_o which_o eleutherius_fw-la attribute_v to_o the_o king_n the_o title_n of_o god_n vicar_n within_o his_o kingdom_n which_o letter_n howsoever_o the_o author_n of_o the_o threefold_a conversion_n labour_n to_o stain_v with_o the_o blemish_n of_o forgery_n yet_o be_v it_o to_o be_v find_v lambert_n enrol_v in_o the_o copy_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n law_n neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o henry_n take_v this_o title_n to_o himself_o it_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o parliament_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o commons_o and_o convocation_n of_o his_o clergy_n not_o as_o a_o new_a thing_n but_o as_o renew_v and_o if_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o change_v his_o bedfellow_n in_o hope_n of_o heir_n male_a as_o you_o tell_v we_o before_o it_o be_v not_o to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o anne_n bulloyne_n as_o here_o you_o affirm_v and_o if_o he_o may_v have_v have_v his_o will_n in_o be_v dispense_v with_o by_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n will_n in_o join_v with_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n against_o the_o emperor_n charles_n as_o before_o it_o be_v prove_v then_o do_v he_o not_o exclude_v the_o pope_n &_o take_v that_o title_n to_o dispense_v with_o himself_o especial_o be_v move_v with_o the_o approbation_n of_o so_o many_o university_n and_o learned_a man_n but_o if_o thereby_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o way_n for_o the_o supply_n of_o his_o excess_n with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v not_o wherein_o so_o just_o to_o excuse_v he_o howbeit_o he_o convert_v much_o of_o it_o to_o good_a use_n namely_o to_o the_o erect_n of_o six_o bishopricke_n
to_o wit_n westminster_n chester_n peterborough_n oxford_n bristol_n and_o gloucester_n whereof_o the_o five_o last_o be_v yet_o in_o be_v at_o which_o time_n he_o also_o erect_v at_o canterbury_n a_o dean_n with_o 12._o prebend_n at_o winchester_n another_o with_o 12._o more_o at_z worcester_z another_o with_o ten_o at_o chester_n another_o with_o six_o at_o peterborough_n another_o with_o six_o at_o oxford_n another_o with_o eight_o at_z ely_z another_o with_o eight_o at_z gloucester_z another_o with_o six_o at_o bristol_n another_o with_o six_o at_o carlisle_n another_o with_o four_o at_o durham_n another_o with_o twelve_o at_o rochester_n another_o with_o six_o and_o last_o at_o norwich_n another_o with_o six_o ever_o so_o that_o we_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o think_v he_o return_v again_o to_o the_o church_n much_o out_o of_o the_o abbey_n land_n and_o if_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o god_n bless_v he_o not_o in_o his_o thrive_a we_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o answer_v but_o that_o of_o solomon_n it_o be_v a_o snare_n to_o the_o man_n who_o devour_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o after_o vow_n to_o make_v inquiry_n but_o in_o his_o wive_n he_o so_o bless_v he_o though_o in_o this_o too_o he_o show_v himself_o a_o man_n and_o consequent_o subject_a to_o humane_a passion_n and_o frailty_n that_o three_o of_o his_o child_n successive_o wear_v the_o crown_n after_o he_o of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v renown_v for_o his_o virtue_n beyond_o his_o age_n and_o the_o last_o beyond_o her_o sex_n of_o the_o one_o and_o his_o mother_n it_o be_v write_v phoenix_n janaiacet_fw-la nato_fw-la phoenicia_n dolendum_fw-la saecula_fw-la phoenices_fw-la nullatulisse_fw-la dvas_fw-la and_o to_o the_o other_o may_v be_v apply_v non_fw-la decor_fw-la effecit_fw-la fragilem_fw-la non_fw-la sceptra_fw-la superbam_fw-la sola_fw-la potens_fw-la humilis_fw-la sola_fw-la pudica_fw-la decens_fw-la and_o though_o they_o all_o die_v without_o issue_n yet_o do_v his_o honour_n still_o live_v in_o they_o henry_n the_o ii_o of_o france_n die_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o three_o of_o his_o son_n reign_v after_o he_o leave_v the_o crown_n to_o a_o neighbour_n prince_n as_o the_o child_n of_o henry_n the_o viii_o here_o with_o we_o do_v yet_o none_o that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o hold_v he_o in_o that_o regard_n accurse_v of_o god_n and_o if_o in_o that_o respect_n god_n curse_v henry_n because_o he_o renounce_v the_o pretend_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o shall_v he_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o reason_n have_v bless_v henry_n elder_a daughter_n with_o issue_n who_o with_o great_a submission_n and_o devotion_n reconcile_v herself_o to_o that_o church_n and_o marry_v to_o the_o most_o catholic_a king_n and_o though_o the_o world_n be_v for_o a_o while_n so_o bear_v in_o hand_n yet_o in_o the_o end_n the_o great_a and_o solemn_a expectation_n thereof_o vanish_v into_o smoke_n now_o that_o henry_n be_v weary_a of_o his_o title_n of_o supremacy_n before_o he_o die_v it_o appear_v not_o and_o that_o he_o wish_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o you_o call_v be_v in_o the_o church_n again_o be_v as_o unlikely_a since_o no_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v make_v but_o upon_o notice_n give_v of_o his_o contrition_n and_o desire_v of_o satisfaction_n he_o may_v as_o easy_o have_v be_v absolve_v as_o wish_v it_o but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o wish_v it_o not_o if_o we_o may_v make_v conjecture_n of_o his_o wish_n from_o those_o speech_n which_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n he_o deliver_v to_o mounsieur_fw-fr de_fw-fr hannibault_n lord_n admiral_n of_o france_n and_o ambassador_n to_o the_o french_a king_n be_v then_o at_o hampton_n court_n in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1546._o in_o the_o hear_n of_o cranmer_n lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o religion_n and_o afterward_o more_o near_o his_o death_n and_o more_o open_o to_o bruno_n ambassador_n of_o john_n fredrick_n duke_n of_o saxony_n unto_o who_o the_o king_n give_v this_o answer_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o these_o four_o sufficient_a witness_n the_o lord_n seymer_n earl_n of_o hartford_n lord_n lisley_n than_o admiral_n the_o earl_n of_o bedford_n lord_n privy_a seal_n and_o the_o lord_n paget_n that_o if_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n be_v nothing_o else_o against_o the_o emperor_n but_o for_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o shall_v stand_v to_o it_o strong_o and_o he_o will_v take_v his_o part_n will_v he_o not_o to_o doubt_v nor_o fear_n and_o with_o this_o answer_n dismiss_v he_o beside_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o son_n and_o heir_n apparent_a prince_n edward_n education_n the_o quality_n and_o disposition_n of_o those_o person_n who_o he_o name_v as_o the_o principal_a overseer_n of_o his_o will_n from_o which_o number_n he_o exclude_v the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n the_o most_o busy_a and_o forward_a instrument_n in_o those_o time_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n though_o he_o have_v once_o admit_v he_o and_o be_v earnest_o solicit_v by_o some_o of_o his_o bed_n chamber_n to_o readmit_v he_o be_v to_o i_o so_o many_o evident_a demonstration_n that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o wishiug_v reconciliation_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o rather_o desire_v and_o intend_v if_o god_n have_v spare_v he_o life_n a_o while_n long_o some_o more_o full_a and_o perfect_a reformation_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o secret_a work_n of_o god_n holy_a providence_n which_o dispose_v all_o thing_n after_o his_o own_o wisdom_n and_o purpose_n think_v it_o good_a rather_o by_o take_v that_o king_n away_o to_o reserve_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o that_o work_n as_o he_o do_v the_o build_n of_o his_o temple_n to_o solomon_n to_o the_o peaceable_a time_n of_o his_o son_n edward_n and_o elizabeth_z his_o daughter_n who_o hand_n be_v undefiled_a with_o any_o blood_n and_o life_n unspotted_a with_o any_o violence_n or_o cruelty_n last_o not_o content_a to_o rip_v up_o the_o disgrace_n of_o his_o life_n you_o dog_n he_o to_o his_o very_a grave_n bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o he_o be_v accurse_v of_o god_n in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o want_v a_o tomb_n which_o be_v the_o want_n also_o of_o queen_n mary_n his_o daughter_n but_o if_o the_o want_n of_o a_o tomb_n be_v a_o token_n of_o god_n curse_n upon_o henry_n than_o the_o have_v of_o it_o must_v consequent_o be_v a_o token_n of_o his_o blessing_n upon_o elizabeth_n who_o notwithstanding_o you_o wrap_v in_o the_o same_o curse_n nay_o how_o many_o of_o your_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o be_v curse_v of_o god_n of_o who_o a_o number_n be_v not_o only_o without_o tomb_n but_o some_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o fury_n of_o their_o persecutor_n and_o some_o in_o latter_a time_n by_o the_o malice_n of_o their_o successor_n without_o grave_n also_o indeed_o we_o read_v of_o david_n a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n 29._o his_o sepulchre_n be_v with_o we_o unto_o this_o day_n but_o of_o moses_n a_o faithful_a servant_n in_o all_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 6._o no_o man_n know_v of_o his_o sepulchre_n unto_o this_o day_n and_o yet_o in_o my_o remembrance_n we_o read_v it_o no_o be_v that_o either_o david_n be_v more_o bless_v of_o god_n for_o the_o one_o or_o moses_n curse_v for_o the_o other_o the_o heathen_a poet_n can_v tell_v we_o coelo_fw-la tegitur_fw-la quinon_fw-la habet_fw-la urnam_fw-la and_o s._n augustine_n that_o these_o kind_n of_o monument_n and_o memorial_n be_v solatia_fw-la vivorum_fw-la not_o su●sidia_fw-la mortuorum_fw-la comfort_v only_o for_o the_o live_n no_o help_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o many_o noble_a spirit_n may_v be_v of_o cato_n mind_n desirous_a rather_o that_o after_o their_o death_n it_o shall_v be_v demand_v why_o they_o have_v no_o statue_n erect_v to_o their_o memory_n then_o why_o they_o have_v one_o this_o i_o speak_v only_o to_o show_v that_o have_v he_o have_v no_o tomb_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o great_a dishonour_n to_o he_o but_o if_o we_o may_v credit_n the_o last_o but_o not_o the_o worst_a compiler_n of_o the_o history_n of_o our_o country_n he_o be_v with_o great_a solemnity_n bury_v at_o windsor_n under_o a_o most_o costly_a and_o stately_a tomb_n begin_v in_o copper_n and_o guilt_n but_o never_o finish_v in_o the_o enclosure_n of_o who_o grate_n be_v curious_o cast_v this_o inscription_n henricus_fw-la octaws_fw-la rex_fw-la angliae_fw-la francia_fw-la dominus_fw-la hiberniae_fw-la fidei_fw-la defensor_fw-la and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o posterity_n how_o artificial_a and_o magnificent_a this_o work_n be_v intend_v he_o there_o set_v down_o the_o several_a parcel_n and_o piece_n of_o the_o model_n thereof_o as_o he_o find_v it_o describe_v in_o a_o manuscript_n receive_v from_o mr._n lancaster_n
reason_n the_o like_a befall_v john_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr poole_n design_v by_o richard_n the_o three_o after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o own_o son_n to_o be_v his_o successor_n himself_o be_v always_o even_o in_o that_o respect_n suspect_v of_o henry_n the_o vii_o till_o at_o last_o he_o be_v slay_v and_o his_o brother_n under_o henry_n the_o viii_o behead_v these_o reason_n may_v move_v her_o majesty_n for_o the_o stop_n of_o that_o declaration_n not_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o majesty_n right_a but_o the_o care_n of_o preserve_v it_o be_v sufficient_o proclaim_v in_o his_o blood_n and_o descent_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v since_o his_o majesty_n who_o have_v the_o near_a interest_n in_o that_o errand_n have_v be_v content_a thus_o gracious_o to_o pass_v it_o over_o it_o can_v but_o argue_v want_n both_o of_o wisdom_n and_o charity_n in_o mr._n doctor_n thus_o unreasonable_o and_o malicious_o to_o revive_v it_o last_o god_n of_o purpose_n no_o doubt_n raise_v up_o his_o majesty_n to_o cross_v the_o worldly_a and_o devilish_a pretence_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o perpetuate_v the_o life_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o call_v schism_n and_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o if_o king_n henry_n the_o vii_o have_v find_v it_o leave_v by_o his_o predecessor_n in_o the_o state_n that_o his_o majesty_n do_v he_o will_v in_o his_o wisdom_n have_v leave_v it_o to_o his_o successor_n as_o he_o be_v like_a to_o do_v and_o i_o be_o the_o rather_o induce_v to_o think_v so_o because_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n the_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v all_o such_o person_n as_o have_v buy_v allome_a of_o the_o florentine_n by_o his_o permission_n if_o not_o command_v it_o be_v resolve_v by_o all_o the_o judge_n of_o england_n that_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v or_o to_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n within_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o in_o the_o same_o year_n he_o suffer_v sharp_a law_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o parliament_n to_o which_o himself_o give_v be_v by_o his_o royal_a assent_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o his_o clergy_n then_o grow_v very_o dissolute_a and_o in_o the_o eleven_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n a_o statute_n be_v enact_v that_o though_o by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n allow_v within_o this_o realm_n a_o priest_n can_v have_v two_o benefice_n nor_o a_o bastard_n be_v a_o priest_n yet_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o king_n to_o dispense_v with_o both_o of_o these_o as_o be_v mala_fw-la prohibita_fw-la but_o not_o mala_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la all_o which_o argue_v that_o they_o then_o hold_v the_o king_n to_o be_v personam_fw-la mixtam_fw-la as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n that_o be_v a_o person_n mix_v because_o he_o have_v both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n unite_v in_o his_o person_n b._n c._n 34._o but_o perhaps_o the_o schism_n though_o it_o serve_v you_o to_o none_o other_o use_n at_o all_o for_o your_o title_n yet_o it_o do_v much_o increase_v your_o authority_n and_o your_o it_o wealth_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o your_o honour_n to_o further_o the_o antichrist_n unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n true_o those_o your_o most_o famous_a and_o renown_a ancestor_n that_o do_v part_n with_o their_o authority_n and_o their_o wealth_n to_o bestow_v they_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o do_v curse_v and_o execrate_v those_o that_o shall_v diminish_v and_o take_v they_o away_o again_o do_v not_o think_v so_o nor_o find_v it_o so_o and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n your_o majesty_n be_v so_o powerful_a and_o so_o rich_a as_o some_o of_o those_o king_n be_v that_o be_v most_o bountiful_a that_o way_n you_o be_v our_o he_o sovereign_a lord_n all_o our_o body_n and_o our_o good_n be_v at_o your_o command_n but_o our_o soul_n as_o they_o belong_v not_o to_o your_o charge_n but_o as_o by_o way_n of_o protection_n in_o catholic_a religion_n so_o they_o can_v increase_v your_o honour_n and_o authority_n but_o in_o a_o due_a subordination_n unto_o christ_n and_o to_o rome_n those_o that_o supply_v his_o place_n human●_n in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la iuris_fw-la divini_fw-la it_o be_v essential_a to_o heathen_a emperor_n to_o be_v pontifices_fw-la as_o well_o as_o reges_a because_o they_o be_v themselves_o author_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n but_o among_o christian_n where_o religion_n come_v from_o christ_n who_o be_v no_o worldy_a emperor_n though_o above_o they_o all_o the_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a authority_n have_v two_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o two_o supremes_n who_o if_o they_o be_v subordinate_a do_v uphold_v and_o increase_v one_o another_o but_o if_o the_o temporal_a authority_n oppose_v the_o spiritual_a it_o destroy_v itself_o and_o dishonour_v he_o from_o who_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n be_v derive_v heresy_n do_v natural_o religion_n spread_v itself_o like_o a_o ca●k●r_n and_o needs_o little_a help_n to_o put_v it_o forward_o so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o a_o mean_a prince_n to_o be_v a_o they_o great_a man_n among_o heretic_n but_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n for_o a_o great_a king_n to_o religion_n govern_v they_o when_o i_o have_v sometime_o observe_v how_o hardly_o your_o majesty_n can_v effect_v your_o most_o reasonable_a desire_n among_o those_o that_o stand_v most_o upon_o your_o supremacy_n i_o have_v be_v bold_a to_o be_v posterity_n angry_a but_o dare_v say_v nothing_o only_o i_o do_v with_o myself_o resolve_v for_o certain_a that_o the_o key_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v the_o crown_n crown_v more_o service_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o mitre_n than_o they_o can_v do_v now_o they_o be_v tie_v together_o with_o the_o key_n sceptre_n and_o that_o your_o title_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n do_v but_o serve_v other_o other_o man_n turn_n and_o not_o your_o own_o g._n h._n 34._o have_v pass_v your_o suppose_a remoovall_a of_o all_o opposition_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o state_n thereby_o to_o make_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o your_o imaginary_a reconciliation_n you_o now_o come_v to_o a_o endeavour_n of_o clear_v such_o objection_n as_o you_o conceive_v will_v offer_v themselves_o whereof_o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o religion_n establish_v which_o you_o call_v schism_n serve_v to_o increase_v his_o majesty_n authority_n and_o wealth_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o his_o honour_n to_o further_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n indeed_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v and_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o religion_n establish_v yield_v his_o majesty_n the_o authority_n due_a unto_o he_o which_o be_v more_o than_o the_o romish_a yield_v to_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n of_o her_o profession_n and_o yet_o no_o more_o than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o practice_n yield_v and_o in_o precept_n command_v and_o yet_o withal_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o some_o of_o his_o majesty_n ancestor_n partly_o through_o the_o insensible_a incrochment_n of_o some_o ambitious_a pope_n and_o partly_o through_o the_o neglect_n of_o some_o weak_a king_n do_v part_n indeed_o with_o some_o of_o their_o authority_n to_o bestow_v it_o upon_o that_o church_n to_o which_o you_o entitle_v christ_n yet_o that_o they_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o a_o power_n even_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n i_o have_v already_o make_v sufficient_o to_o appear_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 16_o section_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n to_o which_o i_o will_v presume_v to_o add_v that_o which_o his_o majesty_n have_v publish_v to_o the_o world_n touch_v this_o very_a point_n in_o his_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o state_n my_o predecessor_n you_o see_v of_o this_o kingdom_n 32._o even_o when_o the_o pope_n triumph_v in_o their_o greatness_n spare_v not_o to_o punish_v any_o of_o their_o subject_n that_o will_v prefer_v the_o pope_n obedience_n to_o they_o even_o in_o church_n matter_n so_o far_o be_v they_o then_o from_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n their_o temporal_a superior_a or_o yet_o from_o doubt_v that_o their_o own_o church_n man_n be_v not_o their_o subject_n and_o now_o i_o will_v close_v up_o all_o these_o example_n with_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o king_n richard_n the_o ii_o his_o time_n whereby_o it_o be_v prohibit_v that_o none_o shall_v procure_v ●_o benefice_n from_o rome_n under_o pain_n to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o king_n protection_n and_o thus_o may_v you_o see_v that_o what_o those_o king_n successive_o one_o to_o another_o by_o four_o generation_n have_v act_v in_o private_a the_o same_o be_v also_o maintain_v by_o a_o public_a law_n by_o these_o few_o example_n now_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v sufficient_o clear_v myself_o from_o the_o imputation_n that_o any_o ambition_n or_o desire_n of_o novelty_n in_o i_o shall_v
have_v stir_v i_o either_o to_o rob_v the_o pope_n of_o any_o thing_n due_a unto_o he_o or_o to_o assume_v unto_o myself_o any_o far_a authority_n then_o that_o which_o other_o christian_a emperor_n and_o king_n through_o the_o world_n and_o my_o own_o predecessor_n of_o england_n in_o especial_a have_v long_o ago_o maintain_v neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v a●_n parson_n do_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o lord_n cook_n that_o far_o more_o king_n of_o this_o country_n have_v give_v many_o more_o example_n of_o acknowledge_v or_o not_o resist_v the_o pope_n usurp_a authority_n some_o perchance_o lack_v the_o occasion_n and_o some_o the_o ability_n of_o resist_v they_o for_o even_o by_o the_o civil_a law_n in_o the_o case_n of_o a_o violent_a intrusion_n and_o long_o wrongful_a possession_n against_o i_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o i_o prove_v that_o i_o have_v make_v lawful_a interruption_n upon_o convenient_a occasion_n hitherto_o his_o majesty_n and_o i_o can_v but_o wonder_v what_o mr._n doctor_n mean_v if_o he_o have_v read_v it_o not_o to_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o it_o or_o if_o he_o read_v it_o not_o how_o he_o dare_v presume_v thus_o to_o write_v to_o his_o majesty_n without_o so_o much_o as_o the_o read_n of_o his_o write_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o what_o henry_n the_o viii_o act_v in_o that_o regard_n be_v but_o a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o intent_n and_o desire_n of_o his_o predecessor_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o full_o express_v and_o what_o they_o enact_v a_o preparative_n to_o the_o roundness_n of_o his_o proceed_n beside_o i_o see_v not_o but_o if_o his_o majesty_n predecessor_n grant_v that_o to_o his_o holiness_n which_o be_v individual_o annex_v to_o the_o crown_n as_o be_v a_o special_a branch_n of_o their_o prerogative_n royal_a his_o majesty_n stand_v none_o otherwise_o bind_v to_o maintain_v that_o grant_n than_o they_o hold_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o make_v that_o good_a which_o king_n john_n have_v yield_v unto_o he_o and_o if_o they_o do_v part_n with_o their_o authority_n as_o yourself_o speak_v then_o be_v it_o their_o own_o before_o they_o part_v with_o it_o and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o your_o roman_a catholic_n will_v have_v it_o by_o divine_a right_n and_o consequent_o be_v their_o own_o as_o they_o upon_o occasion_n best_o know_v to_o themselves_o confer_v it_o so_o upon_o a_o contrary_a occasion_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n but_o either_o themselves_o or_o their_o successor_n may_v as_o lawful_o resume_v it_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v by_o they_o but_o steal_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o he_o hold_v under_o colour_n of_o prescription_n yet_o yourself_o by_o discourse_n of_o reas●n_n and_o force_v of_o truth_n be_v drive_v to_o confess_v that_o our_o body_n and_o good_n be_v at_o his_o majesty_n command_n either_o forget_v 〈◊〉_d who_o you_o write_v or_o not_o remember_v or_o it_o may_v be_v so_o much_o as_o know_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o defence_n you_o undertake_v defend_v touch_v the_o 28_o exemption_n aswell_o of_o the_o body_n as_o the_o good_n of_o churchman_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o secular_a though_o supreme_a power_n and_o how_o his_o majesty_n in_o diverse_a part_n of_o his_o write_n have_v most_o sufficient_o prove_v the_o novelty_n of_o this_o doctrine_n so_o that_o what_o you_o write_v herein_o can_v be_v impute_v to_o none_o other_o but_o to_o gross_a flattery_n or_o palpable_a ignorance_n flattery_n of_o his_o majesty_n in_o that_o which_o he_o true_o hold_v or_o ignorance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v false_o hold_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o like_o a_o shrewd_a cow_n that_o have_v yield_v a_o good_a meal_n o●_n milk_n and_o then_o overthrow_v it_o with_o a_o spurn_v of_o her_o foot_n so_o have_v subject_v our_o body_n and_o good_n to_o his_o majesty_n command_n you_o exempt_v our_o soul_n from_o his_o charge_n but_o by_o way_n of_o protection_n in_o catholic_a religion_n as_o if_o you_o mean_v purposely_o to_o cross_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n but_o i_o will_v ●aine_o demand_v if_o his_o majesty_n shall_v not_o protect_v we_o in_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o call_v catholic_a whether_o our_o body_n and_o good_n shall_v then_o be_v at_o his_o command_n sure_o if_o his_o holiness_n who_o you_o can_v but_o understand_v by_o those_o that_o supply_n christ_n place_n in_fw-la ijs_fw-la quaesunt_fw-la iuris_fw-la divini_fw-la and_o to_o who_o you_o will_v have_v we_o subordinate_a have_v the_o command_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o his_o majesty_n only_o of_o our_o body_n the_o late_a may_v command_v what_o he_o list_v but_o man_n will_v execute_v his_o command_n no_o far_o than_o the_o former_a will_v be_v please_v to_o give_v leave_n whereof_o we_o have_v have_v often_o and_o fresh_a experience_n aswell_o in_o the_o bull_n of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la and_o in_o the_o breu●s_n of_o paulus_n quintus_n and_o in_o truth_n ●_o can_v but_o commend_v his_o wit_n though_o not_o his_o honesty_n that_o he_o intitle_v himself_o unto_o and_o intere_v himself_o in_o the_o more_o active_a and_o noble_a part_n the_o body_n without_o the_o soul_n be_v as_o the_o shale_n without_o the_o kernel_n or_o the_o scabbard_n without_o the_o sword_n those_o king_n that_o out_o of_o their_o regal_a authority_n purge_v the_o church_n of_o corruption_n 6_o and_o reform_v the_o abuse_n thereof_o bring_v the_o ark_n to_o her_o rest_a place_n 12._o dedicate_v the_o temple_n 6._o and_o consecrate_v it_o with_o prayer_n proclaim_v fast_n cause_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n new_o find_v to_o be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n 2._o 3._o renew_v he_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o his_o people_n 38._o bruise_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n in_o piece_n 4._o which_o be_v set_v up_o by_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n and_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n destroy_v all_o idol_n and_o false_a god_n make_v a_o public_a reformation_n by_o a_o commission_n of_o secular_a man_n and_o priest_n mix_v for_o that_o purpose_n 8._o depose_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o set_v up_o another_o in_o his_o place_n 27._o they_o that_o lawful_o call_v general_n council_n for_o the_o suppress_n of_o heresy_n as_o 9_o constantine_n do_v the_o nicene_n 9_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a the_o first_o at_o constantinople_n 9_o theodosius_n the_o young_a the_o ephesin_n 2._o valentinian_n &_o martian_a the_o chalcedonian_a they_o that_o make_v law_n for_o the_o order_n of_o churchman_n and_o church-matter_n as_o 43._o justinian_n and_o charlemagne_n can_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o indifferent_a man_n be_v say_v to_o have_v no_o charge_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o a●_n be_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o protection_n neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o his_o majesty_n in_o take_v the_o charge_n of_o soul_n upon_o he_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o office_n and_o god_n appointment_n who_o officer_n he_o be_v shall_v therefore_o be_v himself_o a_o priest_n or_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n as_o you_o will_v malicious_o infer_v from_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n no_o more_o than_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n or_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o christian_a primitive_a church_n be_v priest_n or_o author_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o by_o divine_a ordinance_n they_o take_v care_n of_o aswell_o in_o the_o priest_n as_o in_o the_o people_n aswell_o in_o confirm_v and_o countenance_v what_o be_v in_o order_n as_o in_o censure_v and_o restore_v what_o be_v amiss_o neither_o be_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n hold_v unlawful_a that_o both_o the_o regal_a and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a the_o princely_a and_o the_o priestly_a power_n shall_v reside_v together_o in_o one_o person_n during_o which_o law_n we_o have_v not_o many_o example_n of_o king_n that_o govern_v a_o people_n where_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v plant_v there_o be_v only_a mention_n to_o my_o remembrance_n of_o melchisedecke_n king_n of_o salem_n 19_o and_o of_o he_o it_o be_v say_v withal_o that_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n so_o that_o in_o his_o person_n these_o two_o office_n the_o principality_n and_o the_o priesthood_n be_v join_v both_o which_o follow_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o birthright_n and_o to_o this_o double_a dignity_n be_v answerable_a a_o double_a portion_n the_o like_a do_v we_o read_v of_o anias_n that_o he_o be_v rex_fw-la idem_fw-la hominum_fw-la poebique_fw-la sacerdos_n and_o it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o regne_n diogenes_n the_o pythagorean_n that_o to_o make_v a_o complete_a king_n he_o have_v need_n be_v a_o captain_n 11._o a_o judge_n and_o a_o priest_n of_o which_o two_o
like_o most_o unsufferable_a vexation_n john_n of_o sarisbury_n in_o his_o 6._o book_n and_o 24._o chapter_n de_fw-fr nugis_fw-la curalium_n complain_v polidor_n virgil_n himself_o a_o italian_a in_o his_o 8_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n de_fw-fr inventoribus_fw-la rerum_fw-la be_v not_o spare_v in_o the_o relation_n of_o they_o and_o the_o book_n above_o mention_v entitle_v antiquitates_fw-la britannicae_n be_v so_o full_a of_o they_o as_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v write_v to_o none_o other_o purpose_n which_o notwithstanding_o i_o find_v not_o gainsay_v by_o any_o romanist_n and_o can_v we_o expect_v then_o that_o his_o majesty_n by_o the_o help_n of_o romish_a catholic_a religion_n shall_v ever_o be_v enrich_v sure_o in_o reason_n that_o which_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o impoverish_v his_o realm_n and_o his_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o enrich_v he_o in_o the_o want_n of_o people_n say_v ●●_o solomon_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v in_o the_o people_n want_n be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o prince_n for_o as_o the_o multitude_n of_o people_n be_v the_o king_n honour_n so_o the_o wealth_n of_o the_o people_n be_v the_o king_n riches_n and_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o people_n the_o king_n safety_n but_o say_v mr._n doctor_n one_o of_o the_o main_a pretence_n of_o henry_n the_o viii_o be_v to_o enrich_v himself_o in_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o church_n which_o notwithstanding_o in_o event_n prove_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o which_o i_o reply_v with_o the_o poet_n careat_fw-la successibus_fw-la opto_fw-la quisquis_fw-la ab_fw-la eventu_fw-la facta_fw-la not_o anda_fw-la putat_fw-la action_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o their_o issue_n and_o event_n as_o by_o the_o cause_n from_o which_o they_o spring_v and_o the_o end_n to_o which_o they_o be_v direct_v 36._o when_o the_o people_n exceed_v too_o much_o in_o offer_v gift_n towards_o the_o work_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n by_o the_o discretion_n of_o moses_n they_o be_v restrain_v and_o a_o proclamation_n make_v throughout_o the_o camp_n they_o shall_v bring_v no_o more_o why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v as_o lawful_a for_o henry_n the_o viii_o to_o restore_v it_o back_o again_o to_o the_o owner_n if_o too_o much_o be_v give_v as_o for_o moses_n to_o restrain_v they_o for_o give_v he_o take_v it_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n who_o upon_o all_o occasion_n at_o the_o pope_n command_n be_v ready_a to_o use_v it_o as_o a_o weapon_n against_o himself_o and_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o holy_a father_n and_o confer_v it_o upon_o those_o who_o therewith_o be_v to_o serve_v both_o himself_o and_o the_o state_n in_o peace_n at_o home_n and_o in_o war_n abroad_o as_o the_o church_n pray_v for_o the_o civil_a state_n so_o be_v it_o to_o shield_v the_o church_n and_o better_o it_o be_v the_o church_n shall_v quit_v a_o part_n of_o her_o maintenance_n then_o that_o the_o whole_a shall_v lie_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o sacrilegious_a hand_n of_o foreign_a usurpation_n if_o in_o performance_n hereof_o that_o which_o shall_v have_v be_v ordain_v to_o public_a or_o sacred_a be_v by_o some_o ill_n dispose_v person_n or_o the_o king_n himself_o turn_v to_o private_a and_o profane_a use_n or_o if_o that_o which_o inseparable_o belong_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v put_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o those_o who_o serve_v not_o at_o the_o altar_n this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v may_v so_o stain_v and_o vitiate_v the_o whole_a action_n as_o it_o may_v carry_v a_o secret_a curse_n with_o it_o upon_o the_o author_n and_o actor_n of_o it_o no_o doubt_n but_o a_o good_a cause_n and_o in_o itself_o most_o just_a both_o may_v be_v and_o oft_o be_v mar_v in_o the_o handle_n and_o be_v handle_v never_o so_o well_o yet_o in_o the_o issue_n it_o may_v miscarry_v god_n judgement_n be_v always_o in_o themselves_o most_o just_a but_o many_o time_n their_o cause_n hide_v from_o us._n i_o undertake_v not_o the_o defence_n of_o henry_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n or_o person_n in_o rob_v the_o church_n but_o to_o his_o unfortunate_a event_n we_o may_v oppose_v the_o happy_a success_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n his_o daughter_n and_o successor_n both_o in_o government_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n she_o maintain_v long_o and_o chargeable_a war_n in_o diverse_a kingdom_n abroad_o against_o balak_n and_o balaam_n gog_n and_o magog_n to_o the_o infinite_a expense_n of_o her_o treasure_n and_o yet_o at_o her_o death_n she_o leave_v more_o in_o her_o coffer_n then_o her_o romish_a catholic_a sister_n and_o immediate_a predecessor_n notwithstanding_o her_o peace_n abroad_o her_o marriage_n with_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o indies_n and_o her_o readmittance_n though_o with_o much_o ado_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n last_o for_o full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o point_n mr._n doctor_n have_v so_o good_a intelligence_n of_o his_o majesty_n disposition_n and_o be_v so_o inward_o acquaint_v with_o his_o secret_n as_o he_o make_v himself_o can_v not_o well_o be_v ignorant_a that_o his_o majesty_n be_v so_o far_o from_o enrich_v or_o hope_v to_o enrich_v himself_o in_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o church_n under_o colour_n of_o religion_n that_o to_o his_o immortal_a fame_n since_o his_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n statute_n he_o have_v bind_v his_o own_o hand_n and_o his_o posterity_n from_o alienate_v the_o revenue_n consecrate_v to_o the_o church_n use_n so_o that_o your_o invective_n in_o this_o place_n be_v malicious_a against_o king_n henry_n if_o in_o no_o other_o regard_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v impertinent_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o majesty_n who_o have_v no_o monastery_n to_o pull_v down_o nor_o as_o yourself_o before_o confess_v will_v to_o pull_v down_o church_n but_o though_o he_o have_v no_o will_n to_o pull_v down_o church_n but_o rather_o to_o set_v they_o up_o it_o follow_v not_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o albon_n preserve_v that_o church_n whereof_o under_o god_n he_o be_v set_v by_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a governor_n from_o the_o spoil_n and_o tyranny_n of_o foreign_a usurper_n nay_o the_o latter_a may_v not_o unfit_o be_v infer_v upon_o the_o former_a and_o if_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o preservation_n only_o we_o now_o pay_v his_o majesty_n what_o those_o tyrant_n former_o receive_v he_o receive_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o right_o may_v nor_o we_o pay_v but_o what_o in_o duty_n and_o conscience_n we_o ought_v b._n c._n 36._o there_o be_v yet_o another_o objection_n or_o two_o in_o reason_n of_o state_n concern_v your_o majesty_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v hard_a to_o answer_v then_o all_o the_o rest_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v that_o your_o majesty_n have_v undertake_v the_o cause_n in_o writing_n and_o set_v out_o a_o book_n in_o print_n and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v great_a dishonour_n to_o you_o to_o recall_v it_o this_o indeed_o be_v it_o which_o i_o have_v hear_v the_o majesty_n caluinist_n of_o england_n often_o wish_v for_o before_o it_o be_v do_v and_o much_o boast_n of_o after_o it_o be_v by_o mean_n effect_v that_o your_o majesty_n shall_v no_o long_o be_v able_a to_o show_v yourself_o indifferent_a as_o you_o do_v at_o the_o first_o but_o be_v now_o engage_v upon_o your_o honour_n to_o maintain_v their_o party_n and_o oppugn_v the_o catholic_n and_o altogether_o to_o suppress_v they_o but_o there_o be_v cath._n nothing_o in_o that_o book_n why_o your_o majesty_n may_v not_o when_o you_o please_v admit_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n and_o you_o be_v partly_o engage_v thereby_o to_o admit_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o first_o general_a counsel_n and_o most_o ancient_a father_n and_o as_o for_o the_o question_n of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v but_o a_o hypotheticall_a proposition_n and_o so_o reserve_v as_o you_o may_v recall_v yourself_o when_o you_o will_v and_o howsoever_o that_o book_n cameforth_o either_o of_o your_o own_o disposition_n or_o by_o the_o daily_a instigation_n of_o some_o other_o that_o do_v abuse_v your_o clemency_n and_o seek_v to_o send_v you_o of_o their_o own_o errand_n it_o can_v serve_v their_o turn_n nor_o hinder_v your_o majesty_n from_o harken_v to_o a_o end_n of_o conte●tion_n for_o if_o king_n henry_n the_o viii_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n may_v save_v his_o honour_n and_o book_n contradict_v hi●_n book_n from_o very_o good_a to_o stark_o naught_o they_o must_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o your_o majesty_n may_v increase_v your_o honour_n by_o alter_v your_o book_n from_o less_o good_a good_a to_o much_o better_a g._n h._n 36._o there_o be_v not_o only_o two_o but_o many_o more_o objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v in_o reason_n of_o state_n concern_v his_o majesty_n which_o not_o only_o seem_v but_o be_v indeed_o hard_o to_o answer_v than_o your_o poor_a and_o slight_a evasion_n can_v give_v satisfaction_n
wherewith_o you_o be_v kindle_v have_v no_o less_o constant_o and_o courageous_o then_o wise_o and_o religious_o withstand_v so_o great_a rashness_n we_o have_v be_v utter_o overwhelm_v with_o intolerable_a grief_n and_o indeed_o this_o have_v be_v a_o fearful_a token_n see_v we_o may_v not_o without_o cause_n suspect_v lest_o into_o france_n have_v fly_v spark_n of_o the_o lamentable_a fire_n of_o england_n to_o the_o consume_a and_o destruction_n of_o all_o true_a piety_n and_o religion_n in_o that_o most_o christian_a kingdom_n which_o we_o trust_v rely_v on_o god_n help_n shall_v always_o more_o and_o more_o increase_n under_o the_o patronage_n of_o so_o godly_a a_o king_n train_v up_o with_o so_o great_a vigilancy_n to_o this_o end_n principal_o by_o a_o most_o religious_a and_o true_o most_o christian_n mother_n you_o thereunto_o diligent_o yield_v your_o help_n as_o you_o always_o commendable_o have_v do_v but_o although_o such_o hope_n do_v not_o a_o little_a comfort_n we_o yet_o be_v we_o not_o for_o all_o this_o free_a and_o void_a of_o all_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n yea_o we_o be_v vehement_o anguish_v consider_v with_o ourselves_o in_o how_o cross_a and_o stormy_a a_o time_n we_o by_o the_o secret_a dispensation_n of_o god_n undertake_v the_o guide_n of_o s._n peter_n bark_n stand_v doubtful_a and_o perplex_a lest_o happy_o through_o our_o negligence_n the_o sink_n of_o vice_n increase_v and_o consequent_o the_o navigation_n grow_v more_o dangerous_a and_o difficult_a for_o this_o cause_n we_o daily_o fly_v unto_o he_o and_o implore_v his_o help_n who_o as_o without_o any_o merit_n of_o we_o so_o also_o when_o we_o think_v nothing_o less_o be_v please_v we_o shall_v sit_v at_o the_o stern_a and_o guide_v the_o helm_n who_o we_o pray_v that_o while_o the_o wave_n rush_v against_o the_o prow_n and_o heap_n of_o foam_a sea_n swell_v on_o each_o side_n and_o tempest_n follow_v in_o the_o stern_a he_o not_o suffer_v any_o wrack_n notwithstanding_o so_o violent_a shake_n of_o the_o ship_n mean_v while_o we_o give_v the_o great_a thanks_n to_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n that_o in_o the_o great_a danger_n which_o hitherto_o happy_o we_o have_v be_v in_o he_o have_v relieve_v we_o with_o most_o seasonable_a succour_n to_o wit_n by_o your_o singular_a virtue_n and_o provide_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n by_o the_o counsel_n industry_n and_o religious_a fortitude_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o gratulate_v you_o much_o and_o withal_o great_o praise_v you_o that_o your_o france_n now_o behold_v flourish_v again_o in_o you_o the_o zeal_n piety_n learning_n and_o magnanimity_n of_o her_o holy_a father_n denis_n hilary_n martin_n bernard_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o memory_n be_v bless_v for_o their_o care_n of_o god_n honour_n and_o the_o church_n dignity_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n may_v acknowledge_v of_o your_o company_n cardinals_z of_o such_o eminence_n as_o become_v so_o worthy_a member_n of_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a sea_n and_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n who_o be_v good_a servant_n and_o faithful_a and_o true_o worthy_a of_o their_o master_n have_v real_o show_v that_o they_o love_v his_o glory_n more_o than_o themselves_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n who_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o flock_n have_v not_o doubt_v to_o lay_v down_o their_o own_o life_n while_o by_o shed_v of_o their_o own_o blood_n they_o have_v with_o so_o great_a fervency_n of_o mind_n show_v themselves_o ready_a to_o maintain_v the_o fence_n of_o the_o lord_n fold_v that_o be_v the_o church_n right_n high_o therefore_o do_v we_o praise_v you_o and_o gratulate_v you_o again_o for_o what_o be_v more_o laudable_a what_o more_o glorious_a then_o for_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n set_v aside_o respect_v of_o all_o humane_a commodity_n constant_o to_o have_v defend_v the_o dignity_n of_o holy_a church_n and_o through_o zeal_n of_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a truth_n to_o neglect_v their_o own_o life_n as_o also_o it_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o great_a happiness_n that_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o this_o noble_a trial_n of_o your_o priestly_a virtue_n shall_v be_v make_v the_o piety_n and_o religion_n of_o holy_a king_n lewis_n his_o progenitor_n no_o less_o reign_v in_o your_o king_n than_o the_o memory_n of_o his_o glorious_a name_n revive_v in_o he_o wherefore_o we_o do_v the_o more_o exhort_v you_o that_o you_o always_o more_o earnest_o persist_v in_o your_o most_o laudable_a enterprise_n god_n very_o will_v perfect_v the_o work_n he_o have_v begin_v in_o you_o acknowledge_v his_o hand_n wonderful_o move_v the_o heart_n of_o king_n which_o he_o hold_v and_o with_o one_o accord_n bear_v up_o against_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o rage_a sea_n stir_v with_o the_o storm_n of_o humane_a pride_n and_o the_o whirlwind_n of_o secular_a wisdom_n sever_v from_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n doubtless_o the_o tempest_n that_o be_v rise_v he_o will_v allay_v who_o fail_v not_o his_o waver_a disciple_n indeed_o he_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v but_o give_v a_o issue_n with_o the_o temptation_n therefore_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n know_v that_o the_o judge_n stand_v above_o and_o behold_v the_o combat_n of_o his_o servant_n to_o give_v unto_o every_o one_o a_o reward_n worthy_a of_o his_o labour_n and_o he_o that_o fight_v valiant_o shall_v be_v worthy_o reward_v now_o we_o who_o charity_n have_v be_v always_o great_a towards_o you_o in_o the_o lord_n vehement_o love_v you_o and_o high_o esteem_v your_o excellent_a virtue_n do_v most_o willing_o promise_v to_o afford_v you_o whatsoever_o help_n or_o comfort_n in_o the_o lord_n upon_o this_o occasion_n we_o can_v yield_v be_v exceed_o bind_v to_o you_o for_o your_o so_o glorious_a and_o admirable_a exploit_n not_o cease_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n daily_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n of_o mercy_n that_o by_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o holy_a grace_n he_o will_v vouchsafe_v always_o to_o keep_v and_o strengthen_v you_o in_o his_o holy_a service_n and_o because_o we_o can_v sufficient_o according_a to_o our_o desire_n manifest_a unto_o you_o by_o write_v this_o most_o love_a affection_n of_o our_o heart_n unto_o you_o we_o have_v give_v in_o charge_n to_o our_o venerable_a brother_n robert_z bishop_n of_o montpellier_n our_o apostolic_a nounce_v that_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v in_o commission_n touch_v this_o business_n more_o at_o large_a from_o we_o he_o careful_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n impart_v unto_o you_o who_o will_v also_o further_o declare_v unto_o you_o what_o we_o think_v fit_v for_o the_o full_a perfect_a of_o the_o business_n to_o he_o therefore_o shall_v you_o give_v altogether_o the_o same_o credence_n which_o you_o will_v to_o ourselves_o speak_v unto_o you_o god_n confirm_v you_o in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o direct_v always_o your_o counsel_n and_o endeavour_n according_a to_o his_o holy_a pleasure_n and_o we_o from_o the_o inmost_a bowel_n of_o our_o charity_n bestow_v upon_o you_o our_o apostolic_a benediction_n yeven_v at_o rome_n at_o s._n marry_o the_o great_a under_o the_o signet_n of_o the_o fisherman_n the_o last_o of_o january_n 1615._o the_o 15_o year_n of_o our_o popedom_n petrus_n strozza_n now_o as_o long_o as_o such_o grief_n such_o joy_n such_o hope_n such_o fear_n such_o love_n such_o jealousy_n be_v so_o passionate_o express_v in_o the_o main_a business_n about_o which_o his_o majesty_n personal_a and_o public_a quarrel_n with_o rome_n first_o begin_v what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o of_o persuade_v his_o majesty_n that_o no_o roman_a catholic_a in_o the_o world_n can_v be_v his_o enemy_n except_o first_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o roman_a catholic_a yet_o how_o far_o he_o be_v move_v to_o anger_n upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o powder-treason_n against_o the_o body_n of_o that_o profession_n his_o own_o word_n deliver_v in_o the_o next_o session_n of_o parliament_n after_o the_o discovery_n of_o that_o bloody_a design_n shall_v testify_v as_o for_o my_o own_o part_n say_v he_o i_o will_v wish_v with_o those_o ancient_a philosopher_n that_o there_o be_v a_o crystal_a window_n in_o my_o breast_n wherein_o all_o my_o people_n may_v see_v the_o secret_a thought_n of_o my_o heart_n for_o than_o may_v you_o all_o see_v no_o alteration_n in_o my_o mind_n for_o this_o accident_n further_o than_o in_o these_o two_o point_n the_o first_o caution_n and_o wariness_n in_o government_n to_o discover_v and_o search_v out_o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o wickedness_n as_o far_o as_o may_v be●_n the_o other_o after_o due_a trial_n severity_n of_o punishment_n upon_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v guilty_a of_o so_o detestable_a and_o unheard_a of_o a_o villainy_n this_o be_v
all_o you_o come_v to_o the_o subject_n but_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o romanist_n i_o doubt_v much_o whether_o he_o shall_v long_o sit_v there_o and_o how_o he_o command_v all_o well_o appear_v by_o their_o refusal_n to_o take_v those_o lawful_a oath_n which_o he_o impose_v now_o for_o the_o subject_n you_o begin_v first_o with_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o descend_v to_o the_o commons_o conclude_v last_o with_o the_o clergy_n and_o sing_v they_o several_o a_o siren_n song_n that_o so_o be_v lull_v asleep_a the_o common_a ship_n they_o be_v carry_v in_o may_v dash_v upon_o the_o rock_n of_o rome_n b._n c._n 39_o for_o i_o own_o part_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o my_o duty_n and_o conscience_n i_o have_v consider_v of_o all_o there_o state_n and_o can_v resolve_v myself_o that_o i_o have_v not_o prejudice_v the_o state_n of_o any_o good_a subject_n of_o you_o but_o my_o own_o in_o come_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o first_o for_o your_o lord_n and_o noble_n it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o of_o their_o ancestor_n be_v allow_v a_o very_a good_a share_n in_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o shisme_n begin_v &_o therefore_o it_o concern_v they_o in_o reason_n of_o state_n to_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o division_n but_o i_o think_v there_o be_v very_o few_o in_o england_n either_o lord_n or_o other_o now_o possess_v of_o abbey_n land_n which_o have_v not_o pay_v well_o for_o they_o and_o may_v aswell_o possess_v they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o schism_n and_o there_o be_v a_o declaration_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o that_o purpose_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n so_o that_o now_o there_o be_v no_o need_n at_o all_o to_o preach_v against_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n nor_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o the_o rest_n of_o popery_n that_o build_v church_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o help_v the_o hugonote_n of_o france_n to_o pull_v they_o down_o g._n h._n 39_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o deep_a study_n and_o serious_a consideration_n of_o all_o state_n at_o length_n you_o resolve_v as_o from_o the_o oracle_n that_o you_o have_v prejudice_v none_o in_o play_v the_o turnecoate_n but_o yourself_o and_o sure_o i_o be_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n there_o be_v none_o as_o i_o hope_v so_o unwise_a as_o to_o be_v turn_v by_o you_o now_o in_o take_v this_o survey_n you_o begin_v with_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v allow_v a_o very_a good_a share_n you_o will_v say_v a_o great_a in_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o they_o will_v be_v so_o good_a as_o to_o side_n with_o the_o pope_n they_o shall_v both_o enjoy_v their_o religion_n and_o keep_v their_o possession_n as_o now_o in_o this_o religion_n they_o do_v so_o we_o see_v you_o will_v juggle_v at_o fast_o and_o loose_a play_v at_o small_a game_n rather_o than_o sit_v out_o and_o become_v all_o unto_o all_o that_o you_o may_v win_v some_o though_o in_o another_o sense_n than_o s._n paul_n both_o mean_v and_o practise_v it_o and_o whereas_o you_o will_v salve_v the_o matter_n by_o th●ir_n pay_v for_o those_o possession_n that_o shift_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n for_o queen_n mary_n day_n when_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v both_o unsold_a and_o unbought_a otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o first_o share_n by_o your_o opinion_n that_o abbey_n land_n may_v be_v aswell_o possess_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o schism_n as_o you_o be_v please_v to_o call_v it_o it_o seem_v you_o have_v see_v the_o motive_n persuade_v to_o a_o dispensation_n in_o that_o behalf_n collect_v and_o reduce_v into_o write_v in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o queen_n mary_n reign_n the_o original_n of_o which_o among_o other_o authentic_a remembrance_n of_o that_o time_n be_v preserve_v in_o the_o office_n of_o his_o majesty_n paper_n which_o because_o i_o very_o think_v it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o declaration_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o and_o a_o principal_a inducement_n of_o the_o statute_n make_v the_o same_o year_n in_o confirmation_n thereof_o and_o for_o that_o also_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v not_o any_o where_o public_o to_o be_v find_v i_o will_v here_o insert_v anno_fw-la dom._n 1554._o qvod_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la iusto_fw-la titulo_fw-la iuxta_fw-la leges_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la existentes_fw-la habent_fw-la aliquas_fw-la possessiones_fw-la terras_fw-la sive_fw-la tenementa_fw-la monasteriorum_fw-la prioratuum_fw-la episcopatuum_fw-la collegiorum_fw-la cantariarum_fw-la obituum_fw-la etc._n etc._n sive_fw-la eadem_fw-la pecunijs_fw-la suis_fw-la perquisiverunt_fw-la sive_fw-la per_fw-la donationem_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la mutationem_fw-la sive_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la legitimo_fw-la quocunque_fw-la in_fw-la sua_fw-la possessione_n huiusmodi_fw-la remanere_fw-la possint_fw-la &_o valeant_fw-la &_o easdem_fw-la svas_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ratas_fw-la &_o confirmatas_fw-la sibi_fw-la habere_fw-la ex_fw-la confirmatione_fw-la &_o dispensatione_fw-la sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la causae_fw-la &_o rationes_fw-la quare_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la dispensationes_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la &_o conscientia_fw-la rectè_fw-la concedi_fw-la possint_fw-la 1_o status_fw-la coronae_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la bene_fw-la sustineri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la regat_fw-la &_o gubernet_fw-la si_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ab_fw-la illa_fw-la separentur_fw-la quod_fw-la hodie_fw-la maxima_fw-la pars_fw-la possessionum_fw-la coronae_fw-la sit_fw-la ex_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terris_fw-la &_o possessionibus_fw-la 2_o complurimi_fw-la homines_fw-la pecuniis_fw-la suis_fw-la acquisiverunt_fw-la ingentes_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la portiones_fw-la à_fw-la serenissimis_fw-la regibus_fw-la henrico_n viii_o &_o edwardo_n vi_o qui_fw-fr per_fw-la svas_fw-la litteras_fw-la patentes_fw-la easdem_fw-la terras_fw-la warrantizaverunt_fw-la quibus_fw-la terris_fw-la &_o poss●ssionibus_fw-la sipossessores_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la nunc_fw-la privarentur_fw-la rex_fw-la teneretur_fw-la rependere_fw-la pecunias_fw-la omnes_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la part●_n expositas_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o tantarum_fw-la summarum_fw-la vim_o &_o mol●m_o seize_v extenderent_fw-la ut_fw-la d_o corona_n difficillimè_fw-la restitui_fw-la possent_fw-la 3_o magnates_fw-la &_o nobiles_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la quorum_fw-la plerique_fw-la vendiderunt_fw-la &_o alianaverunt_fw-la antiquas_fw-la svas_fw-la haereditarias_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ut_fw-la have_v novas_fw-la obtinerent_fw-la &_o in_o svo_fw-la statu_fw-la vivere_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la si_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la possessiones_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la auferantur_fw-la 4_o acquisitores_fw-la vel_fw-la possessores_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la &_o possessionum_fw-la propterea_fw-la quod_fw-la easdem_fw-la habuerunt_fw-la ex_fw-la iusto_fw-la titulo_fw-la iuxta_fw-la ordinem_fw-la regum_fw-la huius_fw-la regni_fw-la habebant_fw-la &_o etiamnum_fw-la habent_fw-la bonam_fw-la fidem_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la obtinendis_fw-la 5_o possessio_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la terrarum_fw-la adeò_fw-la est_fw-la communis_fw-la cuique_fw-la statui_fw-la &_o ordini_fw-la hominum_fw-la civitatibusque_fw-la collegiis_fw-la &_o incorporationibus_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la tollantur_fw-la &_o auferantur_fw-la subitam_fw-la quandam_fw-la metamorphosin_n singulorum_fw-la statuum_fw-la &_o magnam_fw-la omnis_fw-la ordinis_fw-la confusionem_fw-la in_o universo_fw-la regno_fw-la hinc_fw-la indesequi_fw-la necesse_fw-la sit_fw-la 6_o cum_fw-la bona_fw-la &_o possessiones_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la canonum_fw-la pro_fw-la redemptione_n captivorum_fw-la alienari_fw-la possint_fw-la idque_fw-la per_fw-la illam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la solam_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la illae_fw-la possessiones_fw-la pertinebant_fw-la aequum_fw-la est_fw-la dispensari_fw-la pro_fw-la continuatione_fw-la possessionis_fw-la iam_fw-la acquisitae_fw-la propter_fw-la tantum_fw-la bonum_fw-la publicae_fw-la concordiae_fw-la &_o unitatis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ac_fw-la praeseruatione_fw-la istius_fw-la status_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o anima_fw-la that_o all_o such_o as_o by_o just_a title_n according_a to_o the_o law_n or_o statute_n of_o this_o realm_n for_o the_o time_n be_v have_v any_o possession_n land_n or_o tenement_n late_o belong_v to_o monastery_n priory_n bishopricke_n college_n chantery_n obite_n etc._n etc._n whether_o they_o have_v purchase_v they_o for_o their_o money_n or_o be_v come_v to_o possess_v they_o by_o gift_n grant_v exchange_n or_o by_o any_o other_o legal_a mean_n whatsoever_o may_v retain_v and_o keep_v the_o same_o in_o their_o possession_n and_o have_v the_o same_o ratify_v and_o establish_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o confirmation_n and_o dispensation_n of_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a cause_n and_o reason_n why_o such_o dispensation_n may_v be_v just_o grant_v with_o honour_n and_o conscience_n 1_o the_o state_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n can_v be_v well_o sustain_v to_o govern_v and_o rule_v with_o honour_n if_o such_o possession_n be_v take_v from_o it_o for_o at_o this_o day_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o crown_n consist_v of_o such_o land_n and_o possession_n 2_o very_o many_o man_n have_v with_o their_o money_n buy_v and_o purchase_v great_a portion_n of_o those_o land_n from_o the_o most_o excellent_a
themselves_o may_v have_v live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n without_o posterity_n and_o have_v help_v to_o maintain_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o family_n which_o be_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n both_o for_o the_o exoneration_n and_o provision_n thereof_o as_o no_o religion_n humane_a policy_n can_v procure_v the_o like_a the_o farmer_n and_o husbandman_n who_o labour_v to_o discharge_v his_o payment_n &_o have_v little_a or_o nothing_o leave_v at_o theyere_n end_v to_o lay_v up_o for_o his_o child_n that_o increase_n &_o grow_v upon_o he_o may_v remember_v that_o in_o catholic_a time_n there_o be_v better_a pennyworth_n to_o be_v have_v when_o the_o clergy_n have_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o land_n in_o their_o hand_n who_o have_v no_o need_n to_o raise_v the_o rent_n themselves_o and_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o make_v other_o lord_n let_v at_o a_o reasonable_a rate_n which_o be_v also_o a_o inestimable_a benefit_n to_o the_o commons_o so_o that_o whereas_o ignorant_a man_n carry_v with_o envy_n against_o the_o clergy_n be_v wont_a to_o object_v the_o multitude_n of_o they_o and_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o provision_n they_o speak_v therein_o as_o much_o against_o themselves_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o great_a the_o number_n be_v of_o such_o man_n as_o be_v flesh_n mundo_fw-la mortui_fw-la the_o more_o be_v the_o exoneration_n of_o the_o commons_o and_o the_o more_o the_o land_n be_v of_o such_o as_o can_v have_v no_o propriety_n in_o they_o the_o better_a be_v the_o provision_n of_o the_o commons_o for_o themselves_o can_v have_v no_o more_o than_o their_o food_n and_o their_o regular_a apparel_n all_o the_o rest_n either_o remain_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o tenant_n or_o return_n in_o hospitality_n and_o relief_n to_o their_o neighbour_n or_o be_v keep_v in_o a_o live_a exchequer_n for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o country_n in_o time_n of_o necessity_n so_o that_o the_o commons_o do_v gain_v no_o wealth_n at_o all_o but_o rather_o do_v lose_v much_o by_o the_o schism_n g._n h._n 41._o you_o proceed_v and_o assure_v the_o commons_o that_o our_o separation_n from_o rome_n make_v much_o against_o their_o wealth_n and_o liberty_n for_o proof_n whereof_o you_o begin_v with_o the_o puritan_n unthrift_n who_o look_v for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n cathedral_n hope_v to_o have_v his_o share_n in_o they_o now_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o some_o such_o unthrift_n there_o may_v be_v shroud_a themselves_o under_o the_o vizard_n of_o those_o who_o you_o call_v puritan_n but_o their_o power_n be_v not_o so_o great_a god_n be_v thank_v as_o we_o need_v fear_v they_o nor_o i_o hope_v shall_v be_v while_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o posterity_n sway_v the_o sceptre_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o pull_v they_o down_o or_o give_v any_o way_n unto_o it_o that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o to_o his_o immortal_a fame_n bind_v his_o hand_n from_o withdraw_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o but_o restore_v they_o in_o scotland_n and_o both_o often_o and_o open_o profess_v no_o bishop_n no_o king_n and_o as_o for_o they_o which_o look_v for_o that_o overthrow_n let_v their_o eye_n drop_v out_o of_o their_o socket_n with_o look_v and_o the_o young_a raven_n devour_v they_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o platform_n of_o our_o church_n government_n devise_v by_o parson_n if_o the_o pope_n shall_v once_o again_o recover_v his_o foot_n among_o we_o in_o which_o one_o especial_a piece_n of_o his_o project_n be_v the_o pull_v down_o of_o the_o bishopric_n &_o church_n cathedral_n that_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o padres_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o so_o that_o the_o jesuit_n may_v most_o proper_o be_v term_v those_o puritan_n unthrift_n and_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o if_o his_o holiness_n can_v dispense_v with_o those_o who_o withhold_v the_o ten_o of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v as_o well_o dispense_v with_o the_o pull_n down_o of_o bishopricke_n and_o cathedral_n church_n now_o for_o those_o honest_a protestant_n who_o for_o matter_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v conditional_o themselves_o may_v receive_v more_o benefit_n their_o head_n may_v be_v in_o england_n but_o sure_o their_o heart_n be_v in_o rome_n deceive_v themselves_o aswell_o in_o undervalew_v the_o benefit_n they_o have_v as_o in_o expect_v that_o they_o have_v not_o nor_o be_v ever_o like_a to_o have_v the_o fair_a pretext_n and_o promise_n make_v they_o from_o rome_n be_v like_o the_o apothecary_n box_n ha●●ng_v catholicon_n set_v on_o their_o front_n in_o capital_a letter_n as_o if_o they_o contain_v a_o sovereign_a medicine_n for_o all_o disease_n but_o within_o be_v full_a of_o deadly_a poison_n or_o like_o the_o apple_n of_o sodom_n which_o be_v to_o look_v to_o beautiful_a bu●_n be_v touch_v only_o with_o the_o finger_n present_o be_v turn_v into_o dust_n the_o first_o apple_n you_o present_v the_o commons_o if_o they_o yield_v to_o the_o reentertain_v of_o popish_a religion_n be_v increase_v of_o wealth_n but_o before_o we_o go_v any_o far_o in_o the_o trial_n of_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v desire_v all_o ingenuous_a papist_n right_o to_o inform_v both_o themselves_o and_o other_o what_o the_o two_o monk_n matthew_n paris_n and_o matthew_n of_o westminster_n have_v leave_v upon_o record_n touch_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n most_o intolerable_a exaction_n in_o this_o kingdom_n while_o his_o authority_n here_o prevail_v and_o then_o to_o judge_v indifferent_o whether_o by_o submit_v our_o neck_n to_o that_o yoke_n which_o our_o father_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v it_o be_v likely_a the_o wealth_n of_o our_o land_n shall_v be_v increase_v that_o which_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n pronounce_v touch_v our_o country_n be_v doubtless_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o all_o i_o speak_v of_o latter_a time_n verè_fw-la hortus_fw-la noster_fw-la deliciarum_fw-la est_fw-la anglia_fw-it verè_fw-la puteus_fw-la inexhaustus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ubi_fw-la multa_fw-la abundant_a de_fw-fr multis_fw-la multa_fw-la possunt_fw-la extorqueri_fw-la england_n be_v our_o paradise_n of_o pleasure_n a_o well_o never_o to_o be_v draw_v dry_a and_o where_o much_o abound_v much_o may_v be_v take_v it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o innocent_a the_o iv._o report_v by_o ma●thew_n paris_n anno_fw-la 1245._o about_o which_o time_n s._n edmond_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n undertake_v a_o voyage_n to_o rome_n to_o complain_v of_o the_o great_a vexation_n and_o extortion_n offer_v the_o clergy_n and_o people_n by_o cardinal_n otho_n his_o legate_n who_o hide_v himself_o in_o the_o tower_n of_o ousnie_n abbey_n for_o fear_n of_o a_o tumult_n of_o the_o scholar_n of_o oxford_n they_o term_v he_o usurer_n simonist_n rent-rack_a money-thirster_n perverter_n of_o the_o king_n subverter_n of_o the_o kingdom_n enrich_v stranger_n with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o english_a but_o edmund_n return_v home_o without_o success_n in_o his_o complaint_n and_o weary_a of_o his_o life_n in_o england_n by_o reason_n that_o he_o can_v not_o redress_v the_o pope_n oppression_n make_v choice_n of_o a_o voluntary_a banishment_n at_o pountney_n in_o france_n where_o he_o die_v with_o the_o honour_n and_o opinion_n of_o a_o saint_n not_o long_o after_o his_o holiness_n desirous_a to_o see_v england_n cause_v his_o cardinal_n to_o write_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o king_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o thing_n tend_v much_o to_o his_o honour_n and_o safety_n and_o to_o his_o kingdom_n immortal_a glory_n to_o enjoy_v the_o lord_n pope_n presence_n who_o do_v long_o to_o view_v the_o rarity_n of_o westminster_n and_o the_o riches_n of_o london_n but_o the_o king_n counsel_n tell_v he_o plain_o that_o the_o roman_a rapine_n and_o simony_n have_v enough_o stain_v the_o english_a purity_n though_o the_o pope_n himself_o come_v not_o personal_o to_o spoil_v and_o prey_n upon_o the_o wealth_n of_o this_o church_n and_o kingdom_n the_o like_a denial_n of_o entrance_n he_o have_v find_v both_o in_o france_n and_o arragon_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v like_o a_o mouse_n in_o a_o satchel_n or_o a_o snake_n in_o one_o bosom_n who_o but_o ill_o repay_v their_o host_n for_o their_o lodging_n and_o the_o infamy_n of_o his_o court_n deserve_v none_o other_o who_o filth_n say_v our_o monk_n scent_n forth_o a_o steam_n and_o stench_n as_o high_a as_o the_o very_a cloud_n these_o and_o worse_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n usurpation_n here_o in_o england_n by_o impose_v continual_a tax_n and_o tallage_n be_v sometime_o the_o ten_o sometime_o the_o fifteen_o sometime_o the_o three_o sometime_o the_o moiety_n of_o all_o the_o good_n both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n under_o colour_n of_o maintain_v the_o pope_n holy_a war_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o be_v then_o
g._n h._n 44._o and_o we_o be_v on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o confident_a that_o in_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o forsake_v your_o own_o in_o which_o you_o be_v breed_v and_o baptize_v beside_o the_o endanger_n of_o your_o own_o soul_n you_o have_v do_v no_o good_a service_n to_o his_o majesty_n neither_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o nor_o his_o child_n neither_o of_o his_o lord_n nor_o commons_o in_o persuade_v unity_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o first_o she_o can_v be_v persuade_v to_o the_o embrace_n of_o the_o same_o verity_n in_o religion_n with_o us._n there_o be_v only_o the_o clergy_n leave_v which_o if_o popery_n shall_v go_v on_o and_o prevail_v as_o you_o desire_v it_o shall_v shall_v not_o in_o the_o next_o age_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v satisfy_v or_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n but_o there_o be_v little_a reason_n that_o any_o man_n that_o love_v the_o clergy_n shall_v desire_v to_o satisfy_v such_o clergyman_n as_o yourself_o while_o you_o be_v among_o we_o who_o under_o hand_n favour_n papist_n and_o maintain_v such_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o if_o his_o majesty_n authority_n be_v not_o will_v out_o of_o hand_n overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n establish_v and_o in_o stead_n thereof_o reestablish_v the_o papacy_n b._n c._n 45._o there_o never_o be_v be_v nor_o shall_v be_v any_o wellsetled_a state_n in_o the_o world_n either_o christian_a or_o heathen_a but_o the_o clergy_n and_o priesthood_n be_v be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o government_n depend_v upon_o none_o but_o he_o only_o who_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v their_o god_n but_o where_o caluinisme_n prevail_v three_o or_o four_o stipendiary_a minister_n that_o must_v preach_v as_o it_o shall_v please_v mr._n testify_v maior_n and_o his_o brethren_n may_v serve_v for_o a_o whole_a city_n and_o indeed_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v true_a it_o be_v but_o folly_n for_o any_o state_n to_o maintain_v more_o for_o if_o god_n have_v predestinate_v a_o certain_a number_n to_o be_v save_v without_o any_o condition_n at_o all_o of_o their_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o faith_n or_o their_o persevere_v therein_o by_o good_a work_n if_o god_n have_v reprobate_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n without_o any_o respect_n at_o all_o of_o their_o infidelity_n heresy_n or_o wicked_a life_n if_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o assure_a persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o predestination_n to_o glory_n by_o he_o if_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o sign_n and_o badge_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o a_o man_n have_v before_o by_o the_o carnal_a covenant_n of_o his_o parent_n faith_n if_o priesthood_n can_v do_v nothing_o but_o preach_v the_o word_n as_o they_o call_v it_o which_o lay_v layman_n must_v judge_v of_o and_o may_v preach_v to_o if_o they_o will_v where_o occasion_n serve_v if_o the_o study_n and_o knowledge_n of_o antiquity_n universality_n and_o consent_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o every_o man_n may_v expound_v scripture_n as_o his_o own_o spirit_n shall_v move_v he_o if_o i_o say_v these_o and_o such_o like_a opinion_n be_v as_o true_a as_o they_o be_v among_o the_o caluinist_n in_o the_o world_n common_a and_o in_o england_n too_o much_o favour_v and_o maintain_v there_o will_v certain_o appear_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o unto_o your_o parliament_n whensoever_o question_n your_o majesty_n or_o your_o successor_n shall_v please_v to_o ask_v they_o why_o they_o shall_v be_v at_o so_o great_a a_o charge_n as_o they_o be_v to_o maintain_v so_o needless_a a_o party_n as_o these_o opinion_n do_v make_v the_o clergy_n to_o be_v they_o can_v have_v a_o great_a many_o more_o priesthood_n sermon_n a_o great_a deal_n better_a cheap_a and_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o caluinisme_n the_o clergy_n do_v answer_n no_o other_o service_n they_o that_o do_v in_o england_n favour_n and_o maintain_v those_o opinion_n and_o suppress_v and_o disgrace_v those_o that_o do_v confute_v they_o they_o although_o themselves_o can_v be_v content_a to_o be_v law_n lord_n and_o to_o go_v in_o rochets_fw-mi be_v indeed_o the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n for_o the_o clergy_n they_o may_v easy_o turn_v sacrament_n lay_v and_o live_v as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n full_a of_o compassion_n and_o commiseration_n to_o see_v that_o by_o these_o false_a and_o wicked_a opinion_n the_o devil_n the_o father_n of_o these_o and_o all_o other_o lie_v do_v daily_o take_v possession_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o subject_n both_o of_o clergy_n and_o laity_n undertake_v these_o kind_n of_o clergy_n man_n i_o confess_v i_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v any_o other_o way_n then_o as_o i_o have_v always_o do_v that_o be_v by_o the_o most_o friendly_a and_o plain_a confutation_n of_o their_o error_n to_o show_v they_o the_o truth_n as_o for_o other_o clergy_n man_n that_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o law_n as_o well_o for_o their_o doctrine_n as_o for_o their_o discipline_n if_o they_o be_v good_a scholar_n and_o temperate_a temperate_a man_n as_o i_o religion_n know_v many_o of_o they_o be_v they_o can_v but_o in_o their_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a religion_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o fear_v of_o loss_n or_o disgrace_n to_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n they_o will_v be_v as_o glad_a as_o myself_o that_o a_o more_o happy_a temperate_a course_n may_v be_v hold_v and_o more_o liberty_n afford_v to_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a religion_n in_o england_n these_o clergy_n man_n i_o be_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v desirous_a to_o satisfy_v not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o they_o wife_n and_o child_n who_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o condemn_v or_o mislike_v as_o that_o i_o do_v account_v myself_o course_n one_o of_o they_o and_o i_o desire_v nothing_o more_o in_o this_o world_n then_o in_o the_o toleration_n of_o catholic_a religion_n to_o live_v and_o it_o die_v among_o they_o and_o therefore_o i_o have_v have_v so_o great_a care_n in_o this_o point_n as_o before_o i_o do_v church_n submit_v myself_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o receive_v rome_n assurance_n from_o some_o of_o the_o great_a that_o if_o his_o majesty_n will_v admit_v the_o ancient_a subordination_n of_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n unto_o that_o mother_n pope_n by_o who_o authority_n all_o other_o church_n in_o england_n at_o the_o first_o be_v and_o still_o be_v subordinate_a unto_o canterbury_n and_o the_o first_o free_a use_n of_o that_o sacrament_n for_o which_o preach_v especial_o all_o the_o church_n in_o christendom_n be_v first_o found_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o part_n will_v rome_n confirm_v the_o interest_n of_o all_o those_o that_o have_v present_a possession_n in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a live_n in_o england_n and_o will_v also_o permit_v the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n in_o english_a for_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n with_o very_o little_a or_o no_o alteration_n and_o for_o the_o contentment_n and_o security_n of_o your_o majesty_n he_o will_v give_v you_o not_o only_o any_o satisfaction_n but_o all_o the_o honour_n that_o with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o catholic_a religion_n may_v be_v require_v which_o seem_v to_o i_o so_o reasonable_a as_o be_v before_o satisfy_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o catholic_a religion_n i_o can_v ask_v else_o no_o more_o so_o that_o i_o be_o very_o persuade_v that_o by_o yield_v to_o that_o truth_n which_o i_o can_v not_o deny_v i_o have_v neither_o neglect_v my_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o your_o majesty_n and_o your_o child_n nor_o my_o respect_n and_o honour_n to_o your_o lord_n and_o commons_o nor_o my_o love_n and_o kindness_n to_o my_o brethren_n honest_a friend_n and_o brethren_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o rather_o that_o my_o example_n and_o my_o prayer_n shall_v do_v good_a unto_o all_o g._n h._n 45._o that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v be_v a_o principal_a member_n of_o the_o body_n popolitike_a we_o grant_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v depend_v on_o none_o but_o he_o only_o who_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v their_o god_n we_o deny_v indeed_o where_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sway_v look_v how_o many_o clergy_n man_n there_o be_v so_o many_o subject_n be_v exempt_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o whole_o depend_v upon_o his_o holiness_n who_o be_v to_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o his_o command_n and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n in_o stead_n of_o their_o god_n but_o for_o we_o non_fw-la habemus_fw-la talem_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la neque_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la we_o depend_v
those_o two_o thing_n which_o m._n doctor_n crave_v to_o be_v yield_v unto_o he_o shrowd_v under_o the_o cloak_n of_o the_o first_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whereas_o his_o majesty_n right_o term_v the_o present_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n therein_o new_a coin_a article_n never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o first_o meaning_n 500_o year_n such_o as_o be_v the_o cut_n off_o of_o one_o half_a of_o the_o sacrament_n from_o the_o people_n private_a mass_n where_o the_o priest_n play_v the_o part_n both_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o people_n their_o transubstantiation_n elevation_n for_o adoration_n reservation_n in_o box_n and_o circumgestation_n in_o procession_n beside_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o ridiculous_a and_o apish_a toy_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o it_o notwithstanding_o you_o make_v no_o bone_n to_o demand_v the_o free_a use_n hereof_o that_o be_v as_o i_o conceive_v in_o effect_n the_o public_a toleration_n and_o liberty_n of_o romish_a religion_n a_o matter_n most_o unreasonable_a to_o be_v expect_v from_o his_o 6._o majesty_n of_o any_o king_n live_v who_o therefore_o special_o seem_v to_o mislike_v the_o bitterness_n of_o some_o busy_a minister_n who_o god_n be_v bless_v grow_v both_o few_o in_o number_n and_o more_o calm_a in_o their_o course_n because_o they_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n thereby_o give_v advantage_n to_o the_o entry_n of_o papist_n by_o the_o division_n thereof_o how_o then_o can_v you_o conce●ue_v any_o hope_n of_o a_o toleration_n of_o your_o pretend_a catholic_a religion_n itself_o but_o if_o you_o consider_v that_o which_o his_o majesty_n write_v against_o the_o 79._o marriage_n of_o his_o son_n to_o o●e_v of_o a_o different_a religion_n your_o hope_n will_v be_v much_o less_o solomon_n from_o the_o toleration_n of_o a_o strange_a worship_n within_o his_o dominion_n fall_v at_o last_o as_o we_o know_v to_o the_o embrace_n of_o it_o himself_o and_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o divine_n both_o jewish_a and_o christian_a that_o the_o diversity_n of_o religion_n tolerate_v by_o king_n solomon_n in_o divine_a worship_n be_v by_o god_n requite_v upon_o his_o heir_n and_o next_o successor_n jure_fw-la talionis_fw-la by_o a_o retaliate_v division_n of_o a_o unrecoverable_a rupture_n in_o the_o civil_a government_n your_o own_o 〈◊〉_d stapleton_n spare_v not_o to_o revile_v bodi●_n in_o particular_a as_o a_o enemy_n to_o christianity_n for_o pol._n maintain_v that_o liberty_n the_o 4._o rhemist_n conclude_v to_o like_a purpose_n in_o their_o annotation_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o 19_o bellarmine_n spend_v two_o whole_a chapter_n in_o confute_v their_o argument_n who_o plead_v for_o this_o indifferency_n inform_v it_o from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n ground_n of_o scripture_n practise_v of_o emperor_n judgement_n of_o father_n yea_o reason_n and_o experience_n to_o be_v pernicious_a in_o any_o realm_n bo●h_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a state_n and_o dangerous_a even_o to_o themselves_o which_o use_v that_o liberty_n shall_v we_o imagine_v then_o that_o his_o majesty_n a_o king_n if_o any_o other_o in_o the_o world_n so_o desirous_a to_o serve_v god_n true_o without_o shrink_v or_o waver_v settle_v in_o conscience_n resolve_v in_o judgement_n confirm_v by_o practice_n by_o word_n by_o write_v by_o oath_n by_o law_n by_o advice_n what_o he_o open_o profess_v will_v ever_o differ_v so_o much_o from_o himself_o as_o to_o admit_v even_o of_o a_o partial_a toleration_n of_o a_o religion_n different_a from_o if_o not_o contrary_a unto_o his_o own_o a_o matter_n so_o contrary_a to_o god_n will_v so_o dishonourable_a to_o himself_o so_o dangerous_a to_o the_o state_n 22._o be_v not_o partaker_n say_v s._n paul_n to_o timothy_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n now_o i_o can_v conceive_v how_o in_o his_o case_n the_o iebet_n magistrate_n permit_v when_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o forbid_v can_v well_o be_v distinguish_v from_o partake_v from_o your_o demand_n you_o come_v to_o your_o promise_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o part_n will_v confirm_v the_o interest_n of_o all_o those_o that_o have_v present_a possession_n in_o any_o ecclesisticall_a live_n in_o england_n he_o must_v then_o confirm_v the_o interest_n of_o all_o those_o who_o you_o call_v puritan_n and_o caluinist_n as_o well_o as_o other_o which_o i_o think_v he_o will_v be_v as_o unwilling_a to_o do_v as_o they_o to_o take_v it_o from_o he_o nay_o i_o be_o persuade_v there_o be_v no_o clergy_n man_n in_o england_n worthy_a the_o name_n and_o credit_n of_o a_o good_a subject_n or_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o live_n he_o hold_v who_o will_v think_v the_o possession_n of_o it_o any_o way_n the_o secure_a for_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n but_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o right_n of_o those_o who_o have_v the_o present_a interest_n in_o they_o may_v by_o that_o mean_n be_v strengthen_v what_o be_v like_a to_o become_v of_o the_o fat_a benefice_n and_o best_a dignity_n of_o our_o church_n the_o same_o power_n continue_v in_o the_o next_o age_n we_o may_v in_o part_n conjecture_n by_o the_o experience_n of_o former_a time_n they_o be_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n confer_v upon_o his_o favourit_n italian_n and_o stranger_n who_o never_o come_v so_o much_o as_o to_o see_v they_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n so_o harrow_v partly_o by_o the_o cunning_a practice_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o violent_a extortion_n of_o his_o legate_n and_o collector_n as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o it_o be_v sure_o a_o lamentable_a thing_n to_o read_v it_o much_o more_o to_o feel_v it_o the_o second_o thing_n you_o promise_v be_v the_o permit_v the_o free_a u●e_v of_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n in_o english_a for_o morning_n and_o evening_n prayer_n with_o u●ry_a little_a or_o no_o alteration_n belike_o than_o his_o holiness_n have_v of_o late_o better_a study_v that_o scripture_n of_o saint_n paul_n the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o 14._o then_o which_o i_o see_v not_o what_o can_v be_v more_o clear_o speak_v not_o only_o for_o read_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n but_o special_o for_o pray_v in_o a_o know_a language_n and_o if_o his_o holiness_n judge_v it_o no_o offence_n to_o god_n to_o permit_v the_o use_n of_o our_o liturgy_n in_o english_a what_o reason_n can_v our_o recusant_n pretend_v of_o their_o refusal_n to_o join_v with_o our_o congregation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o except_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o permit_v it_o only_o for_o a_o interim_n as_o charles_n the_o 5_o do_v to_o the_o german_n until_o he_o can_v gain_v further_a strength_n to_o work_v his_o own_o end_n or_o as_o he_o do_v the_o stew_n to_o avoid_v a_o great_a conceive_a mischief_n but_o god_n be_v thank_v we_o have_v and_o hope_v still_o to_o have_v the_o fre●●se_n of_o that_o book_n without_o his_o permission_n and_o for_o his_o permission_n shall_v think_v nothing_o the_o better_a but_o rather_o the_o worse_a of_o it_o the_o three_o and_o last_o thing_n you_o offer_v be_v that_o for_o the_o contentment_n and_o security_n of_o his_o majesty_n his_o holiness_n will_v give_v he_o not_o only_o any_o satisfaction_n but_o all_o the_o honour_n that_o with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o safety_n of_o catholic_a religion_n may_v be_v require_v but_o how_o farr●_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o catholic_a religion_n extend_v itself_o be_v so_o doubtful_a a_o case_n as_o none_o can_v determine_v it_o but_o the_o pope_n himself_o so_o that_o except_o his_o majesty_n can_v define_v or_o divine_a rather_o what_o that_o mean_n he_o shall_v be_v as_o far_o to_o seek_v of_o his_o security_n as_o ever_o he_o have_v already_o declare_v by_o his_o breve_n that_o the_o take_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o safety_n of_o catholic_a religion_n so_o that_o if_o he_o will_v secure_v his_o majesty_n he_o must_v not_o only_o condemn_v those_o author_n and_o damn_v that_o doctrine_n which_o teach_v his_o power_n in_o depose_v king_n and_o dispose_v of_o kingdom_n but_o he_o must_v either_o recall_v that_o declaration_n make_v as_o he_o pretend_v upon_o long_a and_o weighty_a deliberation_n which_o it_o may_v be_v to_o derue_v his_o turn_n he_o will_v as_o willing_o do_v as_o absolve_v the_o venetian_n though_o they_o no_o way_n submit_v themselves_o in_o the_o point_n controverse_v or_o if_o he_o persist_v in_o the_o maintenance_n thereof_o as_o in_o great_a likelihood_n he_o w●●l_v i_o see_v not_o which_o way_n he_o can_v secure_v his_o majesty_n except_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o secure_v who_o cut_v off_o all_o mean_n of_o his_o security_n a_o oath_n be_v among_o all_o christian_n and_o heathen_n if_o they_o be_v but_o moral_o honest_a
a_o christian_n for_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a they_o also_o he_o call_v and_o who_o he_o call_v they_o also_o he_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o justify_v they_o also_o he_o glorify_v since_o than_o he_o neither_o call_v nor_o justify_v turk_n we_o be_v sure_o they_o can_v be_v of_o the_o company_n of_o the_o predestinate_a but_o his_o majesty_n himself_o i_o now_o remember_v well_o conclude_v this_o point_n at_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton_n court_n and_o therefore_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v his_o be_v deceive_v in_o judgement_n his_o determination_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v judge_v of_o our_o predestination_n not_o so_o much_o descendendo_fw-la by_o pry_v into_o god_n secret_a counsel_n as_o ascendendo_fw-la by_o search_v our_o own_o heart_n the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o counterpane_n of_o god_n eternal_a decree_n lock_v up_o in_o the_o cabinet_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 2._o to_o tim._n and_o the_o 2._o join_v they_o both_o together_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n say_v he_o remain_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o there_o be_v the_o instrument_n seal_v on_o god_n part_n the_o counterpane_n on_o we_o instant_o follow_v and_o let_v every_o one_o that_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n so_o that_o the_o way_n to_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o be_v seal_v to_o life_n be_v to_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o profession_n and_o depart_v from_o iniquity_n in_o our_o conversation_n the_o one_o be_v require_v in_o our_o life_n and_o the_o other_o in_o our_o belief_n neither_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o such_o believer_n a_o opinion_n or_o fancy_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v and_o a_o shield_n to_o quench_v all_o such_o fiery_a and_o venomous_a dart_n nor_o be_v their_o hope_n a_o presumption_n but_o a_o sure_a anchor_n against_o despair_n nor_o their_o charity_n lust_n but_o the_o love_n of_o their_o neighbour_n as_o of_o themselves_o nor_o their_o god_n a_o idol_n but_o that_o lord_n who_o have_v reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o in_o his_o word_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o may_v just_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n ecclesia_fw-la malignantium_fw-la may_v more_o easy_o serve_v a_o turk_n her_o religion_n be_v rebellion_n &_o her_o practice_n murder_v of_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o it_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o treason_n public_a prayer_n of_o our_o church_n her_o faith_n be_v but_o waver_v and_o full_a of_o irresolution_n her_o hope_n a_o balance_a and_o estimation_n of_o her_o own_o merit_n her_o charity_n a_o ostentation_n of_o work_n no_o god_n so_o powerful_a with_o she_o and_o beneficial_a unto_o she_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o mass_n we_o know_v that_o all_o religion_n begin_v their_o creed_n with_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n but_o none_o have_v less_o reason_n than_o they_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o in_o general_a without_o particular_a application_n and_o for_o s._n augustine_n testimony_n that_o to_o a_o heretic_n the_o entertainment_n and_o embrace_n of_o his_o fantasy_n be_v his_o religion_n i_o demand_v which_o be_v more_o likely_a to_o build_v his_o religion_n on_o fantasie●_n either_o he_o who_o depend_v mere_o on_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n or_o he_o that_o equal_v his_o own_o invention_n thereunto_o b._n c._n 47._o i_o have_v more_o thing_n to_o write_v but_o the_o haste_n of_o answer_v your_o majesty_n commandment_n signify_v to_o i_o by_o saint_n it_o thomas_n lake_n his_o letter_n have_v make_v i_o commit_v many_o fault_n in_o write_v this_o very_o sudden_o for_o which_o i_o crave_v pardon_n and_o cut_v of_o the_o rest_n but_o for_o my_o return_v into_o england_n i_o can_v answer_v none_o otherwise_o but_o thus_o i_o have_v send_v you_o my_o soul_n in_o this_o treatise_n and_o if_o it_o may_v find_v entertainment_n and_o passage_n my_o body_n shall_v quick_o follow_v after_o and_o if_o not_o i_o pray_v god_n i_o send_v my_o purgatory_n soul_n to_o heaven_n and_o my_o body_n to_o the_o grave_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o will_v rejoice_v in_o nothing_o but_o only_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o your_o crown_n and_o therefore_o i_o will_v triumph_v therein_o not_o as_o be_v go_v from_o you_o to_o your_o adversary_n but_o as_o be_v go_v before_o you_o to_o your_o mother_n where_o i_o desire_v and_o hope_v for_o ever_o to_o continue_v your_o majesty_n true_a servant_n and_o orison_n beadsman_n benjamin_n carier_n g._n h._n 47._o s._n john_n conclude_v his_o epistle_n to_o gaius_n i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o write_v and_o mr._n doctor_n his_o to_o his_o majesty_n i_o have_v more_o thing_n to_o write_v but_o s._n john_n trust_v to_o come_v short_o after_o and_o speak_v with_o he_o mouth_n to_o mouth_n but_o mr._n doctor_n will_v not_o promise_v that_o except_o he_o be_v first_o assure_v his_o letter_n may_v find_v entertainment_n which_o as_o i_o hear_v be_v very_o slender_a and_o no_o marvel_v than_o he_o haste_v not_o after_o s._n john_n crave_v not_o pardon_v for_o his_o fault_n which_o we_o make_v the_o mark_n of_o a_o 39_o apocryphal_a writer_n but_o m._n doctor_n do_v and_o that_o very_o deserve_o in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o choose_v rather_o with_o committere_fw-la albinus_n to_o crave_v pardon_n for_o his_o fault_n commit_v than_o not_o to_o commit_v they_o and_o whereas_o he_o impute_v his_o fault_n to_o his_o sudden_a writing_n in_o imitation_n belike_o of_o campian_n therein_o he_o add_v another_o fault_n to_o his_o former_a in_o as_o much_o as_o a_o great_a part_n of_o this_o be_v write_v long_o before_o his_o majesty_n command_n come_v to_o his_o hand_n partly_o in_o a_o latin_a epistle_n to_o mr._n casaubon_n and_o partly_o in_o a_o english_a letter_n to_o a_o honourable_a person_n in_o court_n and_o yet_o for_o any_o great_a matter_n be_v in_o it_o in_o my_o judgement_n it_o need_v no_o long_a deliberation_n as_o it_o be_v sudden_o write_v if_o it_o be_v so_o so_o may_v it_o somewhat_o move_v a_o man_n of_o a_o sudden_a apprehension_n but_o sure_o the_o grave_a and_o wise_a sort_n i_o think_v it_o will_v little_o affect_v last_o for_o your_o return_n into_o england_n you_o can_v make_v none_o other_o answer_n you_o say_v than_o this_o that_o you_o have_v send_v your_o soul_n in_o this_o treatise_n and_o if_o it_o may_v find_v passage_n your_o body_n shall_v follow_v after_o while_o you_o be_v here_o your_o body_n be_v with_o we_o but_o your_o soul_n with_o they_o for_o anima_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la ubi_fw-la animat_fw-la sed_fw-la ubi_fw-la amat_fw-la and_o yourself_o in_o your_o common_a place_n book_n maintain_v that_o a_o man_n may_v live_v among_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n not_o yield_v outward_a obedience_n to_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o live_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n if_o his_o soul_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o understanding_n by_o faith_n and_o by_o charity_n in_o the_o will_n conditional_o he_o withhold_v himself_o from_o such_o outward_a obedience_n not_o for_o private_a respect_n but_o for_o the_o privatum_fw-la public_a advantage_n of_o the_o church_n as_o your_o soul_n then_o be_v with_o they_o when_o your_o body_n be_v with_o we_o so_o your_o body_n be_v with_o they_o your_o soul_n be_v then_o busy_a work_v here_o with_o we_o but_o for_o their_o purpose_n and_o sure_o except_o you_o alter_v your_o opinion_n set_v down_o in_o this_o treatise_n and_o i_o have_v cause_n to_o fear_v you_o entertain_v worse_o die_v witness_v among_o the_o jesuit_n better_v you_o shall_v stay_v there_o both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n or_o send_v your_o soul_n out_o of_o your_o body_n and_o your_o body_n to_o the_o grave_n as_o in_o god_n providence_n you_o have_v do_v then_o to_o return_v to_o infect_v that_o country_n and_o church_n in_o which_o you_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v and_o baptize_v which_o as_o you_o profess_v in_o your_o last_o sermon_n before_o his_o majesty_n and_o in_o write_n which_o i_o have_v to_o show_v under_o your_o own_o hand_n may_v just_o contend_v with_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n but_o it_o seem_v you_o have_v forget_v be_v but_o a_o novice_n in_o that_o doctrine_n you_o be_v to_o pass_v by_o purgatory_n before_o you_o come_v to_o heaven_n except_o you_o suppose_v the_o spa_n water_n have_v sufficient_o purge_v you_o or_o else_o you_o presume_v far_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o your_o profound_a demonstration_n as_o if_o thereby_o you_o need_v not_o de_n profundis_fw-la to_o be_v sing_v nor_o mass_n to_o be_v
say_v for_o your_o deliverance_n from_o thence_o but_o that_o you_o must_v present_o jump_v into_o heaven_n i_o dare_v warrant_v the_o jesuit_n among_o who_o you_o die_v do_v not_o esteem_v you_o such_o a_o saint_n indeed_o castellanus_fw-la who_o make_v the_o funeral_n oration_n upon_o francis_n the_o 1._o the_o french_a king_n be_v except_v against_o and_o accuse_v by_o the_o sorbonist_n for_o say_v that_o he_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o king_n soul_n be_v in_o heaven_n but_o his_o purgation_n be_v make_v by_o mendoza_n that_o he_o think_v he_o call_v by_o purgatory_n in_o pass_v but_o be_v as_o he_o be_v of_o a_o stir_a disposition_n he_o make_v no_o stay_n there_o but_o i_o think_v m._n doctor_n who_o offer_v to_o undertake_v the_o justify_n of_o all_o romish_a doctrine_n be_v not_o of_o this_o opinion_n we_o teach_v with_o s._n john_n that_o 13._o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n but_o m._n doctor_n shall_v have_v remember_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v with_o virgil_n who_o authority_n bellarmine_n solemn_o quote_v to_o that_o purpose_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o most_o just_a except_o they_o die_v by_o martyrdom_n or_o present_o after_o baptism_n or_o do_v some_o notable_a meritorious_a work_n as_o for_o the_o purpose_n the_o kill_n of_o a_o king_n who_o that_o church_n shall_v judge_v a_o tyrant_n be_v all_o to_o be_v scour_v in_o the_o flame_n of_o purgatory_n fire_n before_o they_o enter_v into_o heaven_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o say_v you_o will_v rejoice_v in_o nothing_o but_o only_a in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o majesty_n crown_n where_o 4._o if_o by_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n you_o understand_v as_o s._n paul_n do_v christ_n crucify_a you_o do_v well_o he_o be_v indeed_o not_o only_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o majesty_n crown_n but_o the_o crown_n of_o he_o and_o our_o glory_n but_o if_o the_o material_a cross_n or_o a_o paint_a or_o carve_a crucifix_n this_o can_v bring_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o joy_n to_o you_o and_o of_o glory_n to_o his_o majesty_n crown_n last_o you_o conclude_v that_o you_o be_v not_o go_v from_o his_o majesty_n to_o his_o adversary_n but_o before_o he_o to_o his_o mother_n for_o the_o first_o of_o which_o i_o demand_v who_o his_o majesty_n shall_v account_v for_o his_o adversary_n but_o those_o who_o condemn_v such_o roman_a catholic_n 1616._o censure_v their_o book_n and_o command_v they_o to_o purge_v themselves_o who_o only_o maintain_v his_o civil_a power_n in_o temporal_a affair_n and_o restrain_v his_o subject_n from_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o mere_a natural_a allegiance_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o absolve_v they_o from_o that_o oath_n be_v take_v and_o consequent_o encourage_v they_o to_o rebellion_n for_o the_o second_o part_n of_o your_o conclusion_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o his_o majesty_n mother_n may_v find_v mercy_n know_v no_o better_a religion_n then_o that_o in_o which_o she_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v when_o such_o apostate_n as_o our_o of_o discontent_n or_o for_o temporal_a respect_n forsake_v a_o know_v truth_n which_o they_o have_v preach_v in_o which_o they_o be_v baptize_v to_o which_o they_o have_v subscribe_v shall_v find_v heaven_n gate_n shut_v against_o they_o but_o we_o 5._o judge_v nothing_o before_o the_o time_n until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o will_v lighten_v thing_n that_o be_v in_o darkness_n and_o make_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n manifest_a and_o then_o shall_v every_o man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n who_o so_o confirm_v we_o in_o that_o we_o be_v right_a and_o reform_v we_o in_o that_o we_o be_v amiss_o that_o pass_v through_o thing_n temporal_a we_o may_v not_o final_o lose_v eternal_a now_o praise_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o power_n be_v unto_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o unto_o the_o lamhe_n for_o evermore_o b._n c._n multum_fw-la incola_fw-la fuit_fw-la anima_fw-la mea_fw-la cum_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la oderunt_fw-la pacem_fw-la eram_fw-la pacificus_fw-la cum_fw-la loquebar_fw-la illis_fw-la impugnabunt_fw-la i_o gratis_o psal._n 119._o vers_fw-la 5_o 6._o g._n h._n the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n be_v smooth_a than_o butter_n but_o war_n be_v in_o his_o heart_n his_o word_n be_v soft_a than_o oil_n yet_o be_v they_o draw_v sword_n psal._n 55._o 21._o a_o answer_n to_o the_o material_a point_n of_o a_o second_o letter_n of_o dr._n carrier_n write_v also_o from_o liege_n to_o his_o friend_n here_o in_o england_n when_o i_o have_v almost_o finish_v my_o former_a answer_n to_o the_o doctor_n letter_n to_o his_o majesty_n another_o letter_n of_o he_o date_v also_o from_o leig●_n and_o direct_v to_o his_o friend_n in_o england_n come_v to_o my_o hand_n whereunto_o be_v add_v certain_a collection_n find_v in_o his_o closet_n make_v by_o he_o as_o it_o be_v think_v say_v the_o publisher_n of_o the_o miserable_a end_n of_o such_o as_o have_v impugn_a the_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o be_v also_o annex_v a_o brief_a exhortation_n to_o persevere_v constant_o in_o the_o say_v catholic_a church_n what_o opposition_n soever_o may_v occur_v and_o last_o a_o few_o example_n of_o the_o admirable_a felicity_n of_o such_o as_o have_v defend_v the_o same_o church_n first_o then_o for_o the_o letter_n i_o must_v confess_v i_o expect_v from_o mr._n dr._n some_o piece_n of_o great_a value_n consider_v himself_o have_v promise_v we_o in_o the_o last_o section_n of_o his_o first_o chapter_n particular_o to_o justify_v and_o make_v plain_a from_o point_n to_o point_v the_o religion_n at_o this_o day_n practise_v and_o prescribe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o pelitier_n for_o he_o that_o have_v consign_v his_o write_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n we_o shall_v short_o have_v that_o happiness_n as_o to_o see_v they_o publish_v to_o the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v forsake_v but_o at_o last_o we_o have_v receive_v for_o payment_n in_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o whole_a debt_n as_o i_o conceive_v this_o letter_n with_o the_o appertenance_n which_o i_o will_v have_v set_v down_o entire_a as_o i_o find_v it_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o it_o be_v confutation_n sufficient_a but_o that_o i_o shall_v have_v do_v the_o printer_n injury_n in_o stay_v his_o press_n and_o withal_o have_v raise_v my_o book_n to_o a_o bulk_n too_o far_o exceed_v my_o purpose_n and_o it_o may_v be_v have_v deceive_v the_o reader_n too_o in_o offer_v that_o to_o his_o view_n which_o he_o will_v have_v judge_v scarce_o worth_a the_o reprint_n in_o his_o entrance_n after_o his_o verbal_a flourish_n and_o the_o repetition_n of_o that_o which_o have_v already_o be_v answer_v more_o than_o once_o if_o any_o way_n material_a he_o settle_v at_o length_n upon_o nine_o proposition_n the_o very_a marrow_n and_o pi●h_n of_o all_o his_o letter_n all_o tend_v to_o draw_v what_o he_o may_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o cast_v it_o upon_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o his_o language_n the_o romish_a clergy_n as_o afterward_o he_o express_v himself_o i_o will_v examine_v the_o propsition_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o order_n b._n c._n 1._o that_o our_o saviour_n do_v leave_v nothing_o in_o writing_n but_o teach_v his_o religion_n to_o his_o apostle_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n g._n h._n 1._o doubtless_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o of_o that_o polish_v cardinal_n mind_n who_o think_v it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o the_o church_n have_v there_o be_v no_o scripture_n extant_a at_o all_o for_o though_o himself_o leave_v nothing_o in_o write_v touch_v his_o religion_n yet_o by_o the_o scripture_n alone_o he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n in_o his_o conference_n his_o sermon_n his_o disputation_n with_o it_o he_o inform_v the_o ignorant_a confirm_v the_o weak_a instruct_v his_o disciple_n confute_v the_o pharisee_n put_v the_o sadducee_n to_o silence_n and_o the_o devil_n to_o flight_n not_o a_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o scarce_o a_o prophet_n but_o he_o either_o quote_v some_o passage_n from_o he_o or_o at_o least_o allude_v to_o some_o in_o he_o special_o that_o of_o the_o psalm_n and_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n nay_o in_o the_o 24._o of_o st._n luke_n it_o be_v say_v he_o prove_v his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n from_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n though_o it_o be_v he_o that_o speak_v to_o the_o patriarch_n in_o dream_n and_o vision_n and_o revelation_n yet_o he_o mention_n none_o of_o they_o for_o proof_n and_o except_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d much_o less_o tradition_n but_o his_o ordinary_a question_n and_o exh●rtations_n and_o reprehension_n be_v how_o read_v thou_o and_o have_v you_o not_o
bed_n thus_o far_o out_o of_o thuanus_n to_o these_o may_v be_v add_v the_o miserable_a end_n of_o 4._o philip_n the_o ii_o king_n of_o spain_n who_o though_o he_o have_v be_v a_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o a_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o their_o religion_n yet_o die_v he_o of_o the_o same_o disease_n which_o the_o doctor_n out_o of_o bellarmin_n and_o bellarmine_n out_o of_o cochaeus_fw-la impute_v to_o calvin_n as_o also_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o all_o those_o who_o be_v the_o chief_a plotter_n in_o the_o massacre_n of_o france_n charles_n the_o ix_o then_o king_n the_o queen_n mother_n henry_n the_o three_o than_o duke_n of_o anjou_n the_o king_n brother_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n of_o which_o charles_n die_v wallow_v in_o his_o own_o blood_n issue_v out_o of_o all_o the_o conduit_n of_o his_o body_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n be_v sudden_o slay_v at_o blois_n by_o henry_n command_n for_o grief_n whereof_o the_o queen_n mother_n die_v within_o a_o few_o day_n and_o in_o revenge_n of_o the_o guise_n death_n not_o long_o after_o henry_n himself_o be_v murder_v by_o a_o friar_n last_o to_o cry_v quittance_n also_o with_o the_o dr._n in_o regard_n of_o the_o end_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n and_o calvin_n who_o he_o count_v arch-heretike_n and_o term_v monster_n it_o may_v please_v he_o to_o remember_v that_o sundry_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v be_v very_a antichrist_n and_o by_o his_o own_o platina_n and_o 4._o genebrard_n be_v call_v monster_n of_o man_n have_v have_v most_o fearful_a and_o wretched_a end_n for_o some_o have_v be_v poison_v some_o murder_v by_o anti-popes_n 4._o some_o have_v die_v in_o prison_n john_n the_o xii_o even_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o adultery_n be_v sudden_o strike_v by_o the_o devil_n say_v 103._o turrecremata_fw-la and_o die_v without_o repentance_n other_o that_o have_v compact_v with_o the_o devil_n have_v be_v carry_v away_o by_o he_o and_o not_o to_o reckon_v up_o all_o that_o thus_o have_v perish_v see_v it_o will_v be_v too_o tedious_a fifty_o pope_n a-row_o be_v rather_o apostatical_a then_o apostolical_a and_o monster_n of_o man_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_v say_v genebrard_n if_o they_o be_v so_o many_o in_o few_o year_n and_o die_v quick_o his_o last_o argument_n be_v the_o temporal_a prosperity_n of_o they_o which_o have_v defend_v the_o church_n his_o example_n be_v likewise_o a_o mere_a translation_n of_o bellarmine_n 18_o chapter_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o for_o answer_v thereunto_o i_o may_v just_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o they_o who_o have_v answer_v he_o as_o also_o to_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o four_o section_n of_o m._n doctor_n second_o chapter_n of_o his_o letter_n to_o his_o majesty_n but_o i_o choose_v rather_o to_o close_v up_o the_o whole_a with_o his_o majesty_n word_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o cardinal_n perron_n oration_n history_n say_v his_o majesty_n and_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o disunion_n with_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o whit_n impeach_v the_o prosperity_n of_o kingdom_n philip_n the_o fair_a reign_v in_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n notwithstanding_o his_o attempt_n upon_o the_o papal_a sea_n king_n lewis_n the_o twelve_o defeat_v in_o battle_n the_o troop_n of_o pope_n july_n the_o second_o and_o his_o ally_n declare_v he_o fall_v from_o the_o papacy_n and_o cause_v crown_n to_o be_v stamp_v wherein_o rome_n be_v call_v babylon_n yet_o nevertheless_o be_v love_v and_o honour_v of_o his_o subject_n who_o give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o father_n of_o the_o people_n never_o do_v great_a britain_n ever_o receive_v so_o great_a blessing_n of_o god_n nor_o enjoy_v so_o much_o peace_n and_o plenty_n as_o since_o the_o time_n that_o pope_n have_v no_o more_o but_o the_o look_v on_o and_o send_v no_o more_o their_o legate_n to_o gather_v the_o tribute_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n do_v no_o long_o homage_n unto_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o crown_n and_o be_v no_o more_o lash_v by_o monk_n what_o be_v holland_n zealand_n and_o frizeland_n before_o that_o god_n light_v among_o they_o the_o torch_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o riches_n and_o prosperity_n wherein_o god_n have_v advance_v they_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o venice_n do_v it_o enjoy_v less_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n then_o before_o since_o they_o have_v take_v from_o the_o pope_n one_o of_o his_o sword_n and_o have_v shake_v off_o his_o temporal_a power_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o king_n of_o france_n after_o they_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o pope_n all_o what_o they_o hold_v in_o italy_n and_o the_o county_n of_o auinion_n have_v again_o receive_v of_o they_o but_o course_n entertainment_n pope_n have_v forge_v a_o donation_n of_o constantine_n to_o the_o end_n to_o deface_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o donation_n of_o pepin_n and_o charlemagne_n they_o have_v trouble_v the_o state_n band_v themselves_o for_o the_o son_n of_o lewis_n the_o courteous_a against_o their_o own_o father_n who_o life_n be_v a_o example_n of_o innocence_n they_o have_v skim_v the_o realm_n of_o money_n by_o infinite_a pillage_n wherewith_o the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v endeavour_v to_o meet_v by_o their_o pragmatical_a sanction_n they_o have_v oftentimes_o interdict_v the_o realm_n degrade_v their_o king_n solicit_v their_o neighbour_n to_o invade_v the_o kingdom_n stir_v up_o the_o people_n against_o the_o king_n whence_o many_o trouble_n and_o parricide_n have_v ensue_v ravilliac_n render_v this_o reason_n of_o his_o attempt_n because_o say_v he_o the_o king_n will_v make_v war_n against_o god_n inasmuch_o as_o he_o will_v make_v war_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v god_n which_o make_v i_o to_o marvel_v how_o the_o cardinal_n can_v allege_v for_o example_n the_o late_a ●_z during_o which_o france_n fall_v foul_a with_o the_o pope_n see_v that_o the_o pope_n himself_o raise_v up_o those_o trouble_n if_o the_o king_n or_o people_n of_o france_n have_v offend_v the_o pope_n god_n have_v otherways_o send_v among_o they_o som●_n pestilence_n or_o famine_n this_o might_n with_o some_o probability_n have_v be_v take_v for_o a_o revenge_n of_o the_o injury_n do_v unto_o his_o vicar_n but_o see_v the_o pope_n himself_o have_v cause_v these_o evil_n it_o be_v not_o god_n who_o punish_v the_o injury_n do_v unto_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o pope_n who_o revenge_v himself_o and_o which_o be_v worse_o without_o receive_v any_o wrong_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o to_o exhort_v the_o kingdom_n to_o maintain_v union_n with_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o calamity_n past_a be_v not_o to_o exhort_v they_o to_o love_v the_o pope_n but_o to_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o evil_n which_o he_o have_v cause_v and_o to_o tremble_v at_o his_o thundering_n and_o conspiracy_n which_o hurt_v those_o only_a that_o fear_v they_o and_o which_o have_v draw_v upon_o my_o kingdom_n many_o blessing_n now_o if_o france_n have_v have_v any_o prosperity_n during_o the_o time_n that_o it_o well_o accord_v with_o the_o pope_n this_o have_v be_v because_o the_o pope_n seek_v the_o amity_n of_o those_o prince_n that_o be_v in_o prosperity_n and_o which_o have_v mean_n to_o annoy_v he_o king_n be_v not_o therefore_o in_o prosperity_n because_o the_o pope_n be_v unite_v with_o they_o but_o the_o pope_n be_v unite_v with_o they_o because_o they_o be_v in_o prosperity_n even_o as_o swallow_n arrive_v in_o the_o spring_n but_o make_v not_o the_o spring_n so_o the_o pope_n join_v himself_o to_o the_o prosperity_n of_o kingdom_n but_o make_v not_o their_o prosperity_n but_o if_o there_o happen_v any_o disaster_n in_o a_o kingdom_n or_o any_o civil_a war_n which_o put_v a_o estate_n in_o danger_n the_o pope_n under_o a_o shadow_n of_o have_v care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n thrust_v himself_o into_o the_o quarrel_n and_o run_v unto_o the_o wrack_n to_o reap_v his_o profit_n thereby_o and_o if_o a_o state_n change_v its_o master_n he_o will_v that_o the_o new_a possessor_n unto_o who_o he_o have_v give_v aid_n hold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o liberality_n but_o if_o the_o ancient_a possessor_n conquer_v his_o enemy_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n thundering_n than_o his_o holiness_n offer_v he_o all_o sort_n of_o indulgence_n and_o out_o of_o his_o compassion_n receive_v he_o again_o who_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o destroy_v hitherto_o his_o majesty_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o full_o and_o effectual_o to_o this_o purpose_n for_o sure_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o prosperity_n of_o foreign_a country_n who_o have_v break_v off_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a synagogue_n he_o be_v more_o than_o blind_a that_o can_v see_v and_o too_o
more_o often_o recognize_v it_o in_o his_o prayer_n before_o his_o sermon_n sermon_n pag._n 220._o where_o among_o such_o famous_a doctor_n as_o be_v convert_v late_o to_o the_o romish_a religion_n he_o reckon_v dr._n bull_n for_o one_o one_o see_v the_o late_a b._n of_o lincoln_n answer_n to_o a_o nameless_a catholic_a p._n 115._o 115._o may_v 21._o 1610_o 1610_o his_o majesty_n there_o speak_v of_o the_o french_a king_n henry_n the_o iu_o iu_o n●s●_n itaque_fw-la idexp●ct●●ur_fw-la a_o seren●ssimo_fw-la reg●_n u●_n palam_fw-la ●or_a be_o unive●_n so_o mundo_fw-la profiteatur_fw-la s●met●●_n ad_fw-la sidem_fw-la cog●_n non_fw-la u●deo_fw-la quo_fw-la modo_fw-la animus_n regius_n in_o t●m_n iusta_fw-la 17a_fw-la &_o tanto_fw-la per●●●lo_fw-la svo_fw-la &_o suorum_fw-la posset_n ad_fw-la corum_fw-la par●es_fw-la propius_fw-la a●●edere_fw-la a●●edere_fw-la see_v the_o relation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n in_o these_o western_a part_n which_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v wish_v the_o author_n himself_o will_v perfect_v and_o publish_v publish_v britta●nom_fw-la 〈◊〉_d pag._n 324._o 324._o i_o can_v show_v it_o in_o the_o author_n own_o letter_n that_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n of_o publish_v it_o it_o he_o have_v now_o get_v more_o name_n and_o fame_n by_o run_v away_o from_o we_o then_o by_o any_o act_n that_o ever_o he_o do_v among_o us._n us._n the_o credit_n he_o have_v in_o court_n be_v win_v by_o his_o hypocrisy_n hypocrisy_n he_o be_v like_a enough_o to_o aspire_v to_o high_a preferment_n but_o while_o he_o remain_v like_o himself_o not_o like_a to_o attain_v it_o it_o what_o inti●ing_v bait_n can_v these_o be_v unto_o he_o who_o by_o his_o own_o acknowledgement_n feel_v the_o state_n of_o his_o body_n such_o that_o he_o can_v not_o long_o enjoy_v they_o they_o the_o waver_a be_v in_o his_o brain_n not_o in_o their_o opinion_n opinion_n he_o profess_v indeed_o that_o he_o find_v a_o large_a opposition_n between_o the_o new_a french_a as_o he_o call_v it_o and_o the_o old_a english_a but_o between_o the_o english_a and_o the_o r●mish_n none_o at_o all_o or_o ●o_o small_a as_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v reconcile_v chap._n 2._o s●ct_n 29._o 29._o or_o rather_o a_o counterfeit_a light_n from_o he_o who_o be_v transform_v into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n light_n his_o own_o relation_n show_v how_o slow_o he_o proceed_v in_o this_o business_n as_o be_v in_o hope_n of_o high_a preferment_n and_o yet_o in_o despair_n of_o long_a life_n life_n catholic_a roman_n i_o take_v to_o be_v as_o much_o as_o kent_n and_o christ●ndome_n christ●ndome_n have_v mr._n dr._n do_v so_o he_o have_v rest_v where_o he_o be_v cap._n 2._o s●●t_fw-la 36._o 36._o you_o may_v have_v name_v scripture_n as_o well_o as_o art_n but_o it_o seem_v you_o purposely_o forbear_v it_o lest_o you_o shall_v seem_v a_o caluinist_n caluinist_n in_o your_o 2._o chap._n &_o 21._o sect._n you_o affirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o eng._n to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o common_a prayer_n book_n and_o church_n catechism_n very_o never_o agree_v with_o or_o at_o least_o not_o contradict_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n rome_n have_v you_o bring_v any_o proof_n from_o the_o scripture_n &_o ancient_a father_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o call_v cathol_a you_o will_v have_v thereby_o give_v we_o some_o rea●on_n to_o think_v ●ou_fw-mi have_v indeed_o study_v they_o they_o your_o reconciliation_n of_o religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o renounce_n of_o the_o truth_n truth_n it_o be_v marvel_v you_o have_v not_o impart_v knowledge_n by_o writing_n writing_n your_o place_n compel_v you_o not_o to_o preach_v point_n of_o r●mish_a doctrine_n doctrine_n catholic_a religion_n be_v not_o hate_v in_o england_n but_o the_o religion_n of_o pretend_a catholic_n be_v just_o restrain_v restrain_v you_o may_v as_o full_o and_o ●reely_o have_v enjoy_v the_o pre●ence_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o english_a church_n as_o the_o r●mish_n r●mish_n how_o can_v there_o be_v a_o daily_a oblation_n of_o that_o which_o himself_o offer_v once_o for_o all_o heb._n 7._o 27._o &_o 9_o 28._o and_o 10._o 10_o 10_o when_o his_o majesties_n reason_n be_v answer_v why_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v already_o esteem_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n prayer_n for_o his_o admission_n into_o it_o will_v be_v admit_v admit_v your_o due●ie_n will_v better_o have_v appear_v in_o write_v somewhat_o in_o defence_n of_o his_o majesty_n write_n write_n your_o avow_a presence_n at_o the_o daily_a oblation_n as_o you_o call_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a declaration_n of_o your_o revolt_n revolt_n how_o sufficient_o either_o of_o these_o two_o be_v show_v i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o judge_v judge_v i_o wonder_v that_o any_o have_a affiance_n in_o his_o holiness_n pardon_n shall_v desire_v his_o majesty_n majesty_n he_o be_v indeed_o likely_a to_o be_v a_o faithful_a servant_n to_o his_o majesty_n who_o fly_v to_o the_o tent_n and_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o swear_a enemy_n 1._o p●t_fw-la 3._o 4._o 4._o it_o be_v such_o a_o schism_n as_o the_o apostle_n practise_v when_o certain_a be_v harden_v &_o disobey_v speak_v evil_a of_o the_o way_n of_o god_n he_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o separate_v the_o discsple_n act_n 19_o 9_o and_o g●ue_v the_o like_a commandment_n to_o other_o if_o any_o teach_v otherwise_o and_o consent_v not_o to_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o from_o such_o separate_a thyself_o 1._o tim._n 6._o 3_o 4_o 5._o 5._o this_o ambition_n of_o you_o be_v it_o which_o be_v some_o what_o cross_v or_o not_o full_o satisfy_v cause_v your_o apostasy_n as_o it_o do_v arrius_n his_o heresy_n heresy_n yet_o himself_o afterward_o justify_v it_o chap._n 2._o s●ct_n 21._o 21._o do_v man_n gather_v grape_n of_o thorn_n or_o fig_n of_o thistle_n and_o can_v either_o duty_n or_o love_n be_v expect_v from_o such_o subject_n and_o friend_n better_o be_v the_o hatred_n of_o a_o open_a enemy_n than_o the_o love_n of_o such_o a_o friend_n friend_n ab_fw-la ovo_fw-la usque_n ad_fw-la malueg_n he_o repeat_v the_o same_o phrase_n in_o diverse_a other_o place_n place_n coloss_n 2._o 23._o 23._o esai_n 1._o 12._o 12._o great_a zeal_n and_o neutralitie_n in_o religion_n seldom_o stand_v together_o as_o neither_o do_v great_a ze●le_n and_o vehement_a ambition_n ambition_n we_o grant_v as_o much_o t●at_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o utter_o prevail_v against_o it_o non_fw-la bene_fw-la c●n_fw-la 〈…〉_z una_fw-la sede_fw-la morantur_fw-la ambitio_fw-la &_o zelus_fw-la zelus_fw-la james_n 3._o 16._o 16._o rom._n 10._o 2_o 2_o l●ke_v 16._o 8._o 8._o 2._o thes._n 2._o 7._o 7._o matth._n 10._o 1●_n 1●_n he_o indeed_o deliveredit_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n to_o continue_v but_o sure_o we_o be_v it_o continue_v not_o by_o that_o succession_n and_o in_o that_o church_n which_o you_o call_v visible_a and_o perpetual_a or_o at_o least_o not_o as_o he_o deliver_v it_o the_o envious_a man_n come_v in_o the_o night_n and_o sow_v tare_n among_o it_o it_o matth._n 19_o 8._o 8._o observe_v here_o the_o great_a zeal_n of_o this_o man_n which_o himself_o boast_v of_o in_o the_o 2._o s●ction_n go_v before_o before_o matth._n 13._o 5._o 25_o 25_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o some_o of_o these_o university_n profess_v in_o their_o publish_a instrument_n that_o they_o take_v a_o oath_n to_o deliver_v and_o to_o study_v upon_o the_o foresay_a question_n as_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n and_o according_a to_o conscience_n the_o copy_n whereof_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o our_o english_a chronicle_n chronicle_n after_o the_o determination_n of_o these_o vniversites_n be_v read_v in_o open_a parliament_n there_o be_v show_v above_o a_o 100_o book_n draw_v by_o doctor_n of_o strange_a region_n which_o all_o agree_v the_o king_n mar●age_n to_o be_v unlawful_a unlawful_a how_o learned_o you_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n betwixt_o we_o appear_v afterward_o in_o set_v down_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v image_n image_n no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o read_v the_o scripture_n that_o be_v too_o base_a a_o work_n for_o so_o great_a a_o clerk_n clerk_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v then_o that_o the_o profound_a doctor_n for_o proole_n of_o many_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n forsake_v the_o scripture_n &_o fly_v to_o tradition_n tradition_n as_o if_o in_o your_o learning_n the_o gospel_n be_v not_o scripture_n scripture_n belike_o than_o we_o in_o these_o cold_a northern_a climate_n have_v no_o christian_a soul_n soul_n when_o those_o preacher_n shall_v be_v name_v and_o their_o current_a opinion_n specify_v and_o the_o passage_n quote_v by_o which_o they_o be_v confute_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o unanswerable_a
consequent_n will_v find_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o suspect_v that_o dolu●_n latet_fw-la in_o universalibus_fw-la falsehood_n insist_o upon_o general_n general_n we_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o think_v you_o be_v not_o so_o much_o grieve_v for_o cross_v those_o great_a preacher_n you_o speak_v of_o as_o that_o thereby_o your_o preferment_n be_v cross_v cross_v such_o a_o profound_a demonsration_n be_v that_o of_o bellarmine_n out_o of_o petrus_n damianus_n to_o show_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o pope_n old_a seal_n s._n paul_n be_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o s._n peter_n because_o forsooth_o paul_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o benjamin_n signify_v the_o son_n of_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o for_o this_o he_o quote_v gen._n 35._o and_o 42._o 42._o matth._n 26._o 27._o 27._o john_n 18._o 36._o 36._o it_o seem_v then_o your_o puritan_n for_o you_o tell_v we_o before_o those_o preacher_n be_v such_o may_v be_v a_o very_a honest_a man_n yet_o afterward_o you_o tell_v we_o their_o principle_n be_v such_o as_o overthrow_v all_o honesty_n honesty_n as_o loath_a as_o you_o be_v to_o oppose_v they_o in_o public_a yet_o you_o do_v as_o far_o as_o you_o dare_v as_o yourself_o afterward_o confess_v confess_v the_o faith_n in_o which_o you_o be_v baptize_v be_v the_o ●ame_n which_o now_o be_v profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o i_o be_o sure_a no_o man_n expect_v you_o shall_v oppugn_v oppugn_v luke_n 16._o 26._o 26._o i_o have_v think_v before_o that_o a_o puritan_n and_o a_o caluenist_n &_o a_o creature_n of_o schism_n in_o your_o language_n have_v be_v all_o one_o one_o if_o david_n himself_o be_v a_o schismatic_n as_o you_o make_v he_o how_o be_v the_o creature_n of_o schism_n to_o strong_a for_o he_o he_o those_o who_o you_o call_v temperate_a man_n we_o may_v suspect_v to_o be_v neutral_n make_v of_o lincie_n whoolsie_n neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a but_o halt_v between_o two_o opinion_n 1._o king_n 18._o 21._o 21._o that_o which_o you_o call_v honest_a preach_v of_o the_o truth_n we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o near_a approach_v that_o may_v be_v to_o rom●_n gate_n gate_n herein_o you_o fail_v not_o in_o that_o at_o last_o you_o unmask_v your_o own_o hypocriosie_n hypocriosie_n 2._o king_n 9_o ●_o ●●_o ●●_o jerem._n 51._o 9_o 9_o you_o may_v more_o proper_o have_v apply_v fiery_a to_o your_o desperate_a cath._n for_o such_o be_v their_o practice_n practice_n there_o need_v no_o great_a violence_n to_o aggravate_v the_o heinousness_n of_o that_o plot_n plot_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o in_o the_o next_o chap._n you_o so_o earnest_o labour_v the_o conversion_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o the_o whole_a realm_n exit_fw-la ore●tu●_n condemnaberis_fw-la serve_v nequam_fw-la luke_n 1●_n 22._o 22._o what_o need_v any_o great_a wit_n or_o learning_n for_o the_o justification_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n hold_v no_o point_n express_o contrary_a to_o antiquity_n antiquity_n to_o allow_v the_o people_n image_n for_o religious_a use_n and_o then_o to_o admonish_v they_o that_o they_o take_v heed_n of_o idolatry_n be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v put_v a_o hungry_a horse_n into_o a_o goodly_a pasture_n and_o then_o command_v he_o not_o to_o eat_v or_o a_o child_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o a_o l●dder_n and_o then_o bid_v he_o take_v heed_n of_o a_o fall_n fall_n why_o do_v they_o cover_v they_o in_o lent_n then_o then_o we_o shall_v indeed_o have_v our_o conversation_n among_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n but_o not_o among_o their_o image_n on_o earth_n m._n hooker_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n sect._n 65._o 65._o i_o tell_v you_o before_o you_o be_v prepossess_v with_o prejudice_n which_o make_v you_o object_v so_o weak_o weak_o have_v it_o take_v effect_n they_o will_v have_v abhor_v it_o as_o sixtus_n do_v the_o friar_n murder_v of_o henry_n the_o iii_o of_o france_n in_o the_o consistory_n of_o cardinal_n where_o he_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n redemption_n a_o likely_a matter_n that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v make_v complaint_n in_o a_o judicial_a proceed_n to_o he_o in_o who_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o right_a of_o proceed_v judicial_o in_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o own_o subject_n subject_n all_o those_o writer_n who_o you_o call_v catholic_n do_v so_o condemn_v it_o as_o they_o seem_v rather_o to_o think_v it_o unfortunate_a in_o the_o success_n then_o mischievous_a in_o the_o plot_n plot_n what_o authority_n this_o be_v will_v appear_v in_o pius_n his_o bull_n who_o word_n be_v these_o and_o he_o alone_o have_v he_o make_v chief_a over_o all_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n who_o may_v alone_o root_v out_o destroy_v scatter_v waste_n plant_v and_o build_v that_o the_o faithful_a people_n knit_v together_o with_o the_o band_n of_o mutual_a charity_n may_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n spirit_n how_o can_v your_o hope_n be_v such_o since_o your_o resolution_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o your_o own_o word_n in_o diverse_a passage_n before_o before_o yourself_o within_o a_o few_o line_n after_o acknowledge_v you_o find_v many_o many_o so_o that_o it_o seem_v by_o your_o own_o confession_n the_o great_a corruption_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n see_v by_o god_n wheat_n field_n in_o your_o understanding_n can_v be_v mean_v none_o other_o but_o that_o church_n in_o which_o in_o your_o opinion_n grace_v most_o abound_v abound_v belike_o than_o you_o see_v some_o broad_a difference_n in_o the_o circumstance_n circumstance_n you_o make_v sure_a work_n for_o that_o by_o carry_v over_o store_n of_o money_n with_o you_o &_o by_o obtain_v pension_n from_o the_o pope_n the_o q._n mother_n of_o france_n and_o cardinal_n pe●●on_n pe●●on_n gal._n 2._o 21._o 21._o col._n 2._o 20_o 21_o 22_o 22_o 1._o pet._n 1._o 19_o 19_o it_o may_v be_v those_o affliction_n serve_v to_o free_v you_o from_o purgatory_n as_o you_o presume_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o your_o letter_n otherwise_o i_o see_v not_o why_o you_o shall_v afflict_v yourself_o for_o choose_v the_o only_o suppose_a mean_n of_o your_o salvation_n salvation_n you_o dispute_v with_o such_o learned_a man_n as_o you_o can_v meet_v with_o and_o yet_o avoid_v the_o company_n of_o catholic_n you_o promise_v his_o majesty_n to_o remember_v he_o at_o the_o daily_a oblation_n and_o yet_o you_o abstain_v from_o their_o church_n church_n that_o which_o you_o call_v peace_n be_v a_o betray_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o truth_n and_o 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o you_o call_v a_o reconciliation_n be_v a_o rent_n from_o foreign_a reform_a church_n church_n i_o marvel_v who_o give_v you_o authority_n to_o bring_v m._n casaubon_n over_o from_o france_n france_n have_v receive_v this_o answer_n what_o move_v you_o to_o be_v so_o saucy_a and_o importunate_a to_o move_v his_o majesty_n the_o second_o time_n to_o entertain_v society_n with_o that_o church_n church_n though_o you_o love_v that_o romish_a religion_n well_o you_o love_v your_o life_n better_o better_o in_o what_o sense_n rome_n may_v be_v term_v the_o mother_n church_n see_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 45._o section_n section_n his_o majesty_n term_v he_o the_o patriarch_n but_o not_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o west_n west_n where_o be_v your_o great_a zeal_n then_o to_o swear_v against_o your_o conscience_n for_o fashion_n but_o do_v you_o not_o take_v it_o again_o when_o you_o come_v to_o year_n of_o discretion_n at_o the_o take_n of_o your_o degree_n at_o your_o institution_n in_o your_o benefice_n at_o your_o admittance_n to_o your_o prebendry_n and_o chaplenship_n and_o oft_o recognize_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o say_a oath_n in_o your_o prayer_n before_o every_o sermon_n you_o make_v how_o then_o come_v it_o now_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o will_v not_o take_v it_o again_o to_o gain_v the_o great_a preferment_n in_o y●_z world_n but_o that_o you_o be_v out_o of_o hope_n to_o get_v any_o or_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n long_o to_o enjoy_v it_o it_o the_o bishop_n in_o k._n hen._n the_o 8._o time_n think_v themselves_o as_o good_a christian_n as_o yourself_o yet_o they_o take_v it_o or_o at_o least_o make_v a_o show_n of_o take_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n beside_o you_o call_v th●_n conscience_n or_o the_o christianity_n of_o your_o honest_a brethren_n of_o the_o clergy_n into_o question_n who_o have_v take_v the_o same_o oath_n it_o may_v be_v more_o than_o once_o and_o yet_o be_v good_a scholar_n as_o you_o pretend_v they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a what_o offence_n they_o incur_v in_o take_v it_o it_o master_n d●●lington_n in_o his_o inference_n upon_o guicciardines_n degression_n
as_o to_o be_v a_o scourge_n to_o other_o state_n or_o for_o some_o other_o temporal_a service_n which_o either_o their_o predecessor_n have_v do_v or_o themselves_o may_v do_v or_o last_o as_o s._n jerome_n note_n god_n thereby_o invite_v they_o by_o his_o bounty_n that_o themselves_o shall_v be_v convert_v from_o their_o own_o sin_n see_v t._n fitz●herbert_n of_o this_o poi●t_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o policy_n and_o religion_n part_n 1._o ca._n 17._o 17._o his_o ordinary_a guard_n in_o constantinople_n and_o there_o about_o be_v but_o 24._o thousand_o and_o though_o many_o of_o they_o be_v take_v from_o the_o breast_n of_o their_o christian_a mother_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o the_o great_a part_n as_o you_o avouch_v avouch_v their_o facility_n in_o admit_v other_o religion_n aswell_o as_o their_o own_o to_o hope_v of_o salvation_n shall_v in_o reason_n rather_o weaken_v their_o empire_n then_o fortify_v it_o and_o those_o other_o principle_n of_o great_a importance_n rather_o serve_v to_o make_v a_o tyrant_n then_o to_o increase_v or_o maintain_v a_o temporal_a christian_a government_n rom._n 13._o de_fw-fr civit_n d●i_fw-fr lib._n 5._o cap._n 21._o 21._o since_o it_o be_v first_o a_o church_n there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o able_a labourer_n in_o it_o nor_o religion_n so_o sincere_o preach_v and_o profess_v as_o by_o god_n grac●_n it_o be_v at_o this_o day_n so_o that_o it_o rather_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o body_n and_o you_o of_o a_o shadow_n shadow_n by_o schism_n and_o heresy_n you_o understand_v schismatics_n and_o heretic_n and_o among_o they_o you_o rank_n his_o majesty_n such_o be_v the_o great_a honour_v you_o do_v he_o as_o the_o jew_n deal_v with_o christ_n so_o do_v you_o with_o his_o anointed_n they_o say_v haile_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o 〈◊〉_d he_o with_o the●r_a rod_n john_n 19_o 3._o 3._o observe_v the_o moderation_n of_o this_o reconciler_n who_o will_v bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n that_o christ_n be_v none_o otherwise_o present_a among_o we_o in_o our_o church_n than_o he_o be_v among_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n hell_n if_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o secret_a chamber_n believe_v it_o not_o mat._n 24._o 26._o 26._o who_o be_v more_o guilty_a of_o this_o than_o your_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n jesuit_n be_v not_o this_o the_o pretence_n of_o thomas_n p●r●y_n earl_n of_o northumberland_n and_o charles_n nevil_n earl_n of_o westmoreland_n when_o they_o take_v arm_n and_o raise_v force_n against_o their_o sovereign_n in_o the_o year_n 1569._o and_o yet_o send_v out_o proclamation_n and_o commission_n in_o her_o name_n which_o notwithstanding_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v popish_a traitor_n howbeit_o the_o spanish_a expurgatory_n index_n labour_v to_o clear_v they_o from_o that_o imputation_n as_o also_o the_o earl_n of_o desmond_n and_o a_o notorious_a traitor_n of_o ireland_n by_o rase_v that_o testimony_n of_o they_o in_o m._n cambden_n who_o just_o record_v they_o so_o to_o posterity_n posterity_n who_o have_v serve_v their_o own_o turn_n most_o and_o raise_v more_o sedition_n the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n by_o their_o unjust_a usurpation_n or_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n by_o their_o just_a reformation_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o world_n to_o judge_v judge_v this_o be_v the_o hope_n and_o prayer_n o●_n you_o all_o as_o long_o as_o you_o want_v strength_n but_o if_o you_o have_v that_o once_o we_o shall_v quick_o hear_v you_o change_v your_o note_n and_o sing_v another_o song_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o can_v account_v your_o prayer_n none_o other_o then_o as_o they_o in_o the_o last_o psalm_n save_o one_o who_o have_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n in_o their_o mouth_n and_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n in_o their_o hand_n either_o be_v what_o you_o will_v seem_v or_o seem_v to_o be_v what_o indeed_o you_o be_v be_v psal._n 73._o 73._o psal._n 103._o 103._o in_o the_o front_n of_o this_o reason_n you_o seem_v to_o disstinguish_v it_o from_o the_o former_a but_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o this_o section_n you_o mere_o confound_v they_o they_o in_o say_v so_o you_o can_v but_o put_v his_o majesty_n to_o rebuke_v also_o there_o be_v the_o like_a &_o none_o other_o reason_n of_o he_o and_o of_o other_o king_n who_o have_v disclaim_v union_n with_o rome_n rome_n i_o marvel_v much_o where_o those_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v find_v for_o the_o space_n of_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o whether_o the_o greatness_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o great_a turk_n or_o king_n of_o china_n be_v not_o beyond_o all_o the_o rule_v that_o catholic_a religion_n deliver_v in_o that_o kind_n kind_n what_o they_o be_v that_o despise_v government_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n his_o majesty_n be_v not_o now_o to_o seek_v seek_v de_fw-fr la●ci●_n cap._n 7_o 7_o de_fw-fr ponti_n ro._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o 7._o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr cler._n cap._n 20._o 20._o de_fw-fr pontif._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o 16._o lib._n 5._o cap._n 8._o 8._o de_fw-fr laicis_fw-la cap._n 8._o 8._o de_fw-fr pontif._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 8._o 8._o de_fw-fr pontif._n lib_n 2_o cap._n 26._o 26._o de_fw-fr pontif._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 15._o 15._o d●_n clericis_fw-la cap._n 28._o 28._o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la 2._o sam._n 7._o 14._o 14._o psal_n 82_o 6._o 6._o 1._o sam._n 24._o 11._o 11._o 2._o chro._n 9_o 8._o 8._o 2._o sam._n 14._o 20._o 20._o 2._o sam._n 21._o 17._o 17._o isaiah_n 49._o 23._o 23._o rom._n 13._o 5._o 5._o 1_o tim._n 2._o 2._o 2._o rom._n 13._o 4._o matth._n 22._o 11._o 11._o neither_o the_o dutch_a nor_o the_o french_a acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n their_o chief_n chief_n they_o join_v together_o against_o the_o visible_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o you_o call_v order_n but_o good_a it_o can_v not_o be_v be_v not_o from_o god_n god_n i_o desire_v to_o learn_v where_o you_o find_v that_o the_o devil_n torment_v one_o another_o once_o we_o be_v sure_a if_o they_o do_v but_o help_v to_o cast_v out_o one_o another_o their_o kingdom_n can_v not_o stand_v stand_v you_o seem_v to_o intend_v the_o netherlands_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v never_o a_o kingdom_n nor_o their_o burgher_n prince_n but_o how_o the_o pope_n have_v turn_v the_o ancient_a kingdom_n of_o the_o roman_n into_o a_o new_a state_n and_o make_v himself_o of_o a_o priest_n a_o temporal_a prince_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a ignorant_a neither_o can_v i_o persuade_v myself_o that_o your_o catholic_n will_n ever_o join_v together_o to_o make_v one_o king_n over_o they_o all_o though_o the_o jesuit_n it_o may_v be_v both_o desire_n and_o endeavour_n it_o it_o the_o word_n geuse_n in_o their_o language_n signify_v a_o beggar_n beggar_n bellarmine_n charge_v not_o only_a calum_fw-la with_o this_o opinion_n but_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o kellison_n melancthon_n who_o be_v not_o caluinist_n caluinist_n sure_o that_o pope_n who_o in_o his_o conclave_n tell_v his_o cardinal_n that_o the_o dominican_n friar_n murder_v the_o french_a king_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n by_o his_o ordinance_n by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o almighty_a by_o his_o special_a help_n speak_v little_o less_o yet_o be_v that_o oration_n verify_v by_o warmington_n a_o romish_a priest_n sometime_o chaplain_n to_o card._n allen_n from_o who_o himself_o get_v a_o copy_n copy_n they_o may_v quick_o be_v as_o learned_a as_o yourself_o in_o the_o scripture_n for_o any_o thing_n appear_v in_o this_o epistle_n epistle_n belike_o yourself_o be_v present_a to_o take_v your_o part_n of_o the_o ale_n or_o you_o have_v good_a intelligence_n with_o the_o alewise_o alewise_o 1_o in_o his_o speech_n in_o parliament_n after_o the_o powder_n treason_n treason_n job._n 12._o 19_o 21._o in_o 1._o 2._o d._n 129._o n._n 2._o in_o 1._o jac._n 10._o reas_fw-la cap._n 8._o demonst._n 1_o 3_o 7._o lection_n 8._o par_fw-fr ●_o de_fw-fr sig_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o in_o h●●_n epist_n to_o cham._n in_o his_o survey_n l._n 5._o c._n 2._o bib._n sel._n li._n 8._o c._n 11_o de_fw-fr s_n gra_fw-mi lib._n 2._o cap._n ●_o 3._o lib._n 3._o q._n 12._o de_fw-fr sac_fw-la l._n 1._o pa._n 4._o c._n 12._o 2._o d._n 34._o q._n 1._o art_n 3._o 1._o q._n 13._o art_n 1._o pa._n 1_o 9_o 3._o 1_o 2._o q._n 93._o art_n 6._o pa._n 4_o 96._o 2._o d._n 37._o q._n 1._o 1._o par_fw-fr q_o 49._o be_v 2_o lib._n 1._o do_v 41._o in_o 9_o ad_fw-la rom._n lect_n 3._o torquet_fw-la ac_fw-la flectit_fw-la in_o eye_n invisibiliter_fw-la operando_fw-la operando_fw-la vers._n 27._o 28._o 28._o vers._n 5._o 5._o cap._n 1._o 21._o 21._o cap._n 10._o 15._o 15._o foelix_fw-la scelus_fw-la virtus_fw-la voco_fw-la have_v it_o take_v effect_n that_o which_o now_o be_v style_v a_o horrible_a
treason_n have_v be_v a_o most_o honourable_a and_o meritorious_a act_n act_n it_o be_v the_o devil_n indeed_o that_o wrought_v it_o it_o be_v beyond_o all_o humane_a invention_n yet_o you_o can_v deny_v though_o you_o be_v unwilling_a to_o grant_v it_o that_o he_o use_v none_o but_o pretend_a catholic_n for_o his_o instrument_n in_o that_o business_n business_n the_o latter_a we_o easy_o believe_v but_o leave_v you_o to_o prove_v the_o former_a former_a it_o may_v be_v by_o god_n you_o understand_v he_o who_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o by_o lawful_a obedience_n as_o much_o and_o as_o far_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a fit_a whether_o our_o religion_n or_o you_o bind_v subject_n more_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n let_v my_o answer_n to_o your_o 12._o section_n make_v proof_n proof_n indeed_o the_o fresh_a example_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o 2._o last_v henr._n of_o france_n and_o the_o infinite_a tr●●●sons_n against_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o our_o present_a sovereign_n can_v be_v but_o odious_a to_o all_o good_a christian_n christian_n perpetuity_n of_o kingdom_n be_v only_o from_o god_n but_o yet_o may_v his_o majesty_n more_o just_o expect_v perpetuity_n from_o his_o subject_n who_o acknowledge_v none_o other_o sovereign_n than_o those_o prince_n from_o they_o who_o acknowledge_v they_o deposeable_a by_o a_o foreign_a power_n power_n their_o religion_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o lively_a oracle_n of_o god_n can_v but_o tie_v they_o more_o effectual_o to_o itself_o then_o your_o humane_a tradition_n tradition_n we_o assume_v no_o liberty_n of_o expound_v article_n of_o faith_n at_o our_o pleasure_n as_o his_o majesty_n have_v declare_v it_o in_o his_o book_n against_o vorst_a but_o a_o freedom_n by_o christ_n from_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o from_o observe_v humane_a tradition_n as_o religious_o as_o divine_a ordinance_n ordinance_n garnet_n by_o eudaemon_n eudaemon_n greenwell_n and_o gerrard_n gerrard_n it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o christopherus_n thua●●●s_v report_v by_o jacobus_n aug._n his_o son_n son_n eccles._n 49._o 1._o 1._o you_o seem_v to_o mean_v the_o ancient_a roman_n who_o make_v more_o conscience_n of_o a_o oath_n in_o which_o particular_a act_n of_o religion_n you_o afterward_o insist_v then_o the_o romish_a catholic_n at_o this_o day_n day_n ebr._n 6._o 16._o 16._o jere._n 4._o 2._o 2._o gen._n 21._o 21._o gen._n 31._o 31._o be_v not_o this_o romish_a opinion_n which_o hold_v it_o sufficient_a to_o believe_v as_o y●_z church_n believe_v so_o that_o they_o live_v moral_o well_o but_o for_o ourselves_o we_o have_v have_v experience_n y●_z where_o our_o religion_n most_o prevail_v and_o man_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o barbarism_n &_o incivility_n be_v the_o more_o banish_v banish_v the_o word_n of_o the_o poet_n be_v nemo_fw-la repent_v fuit_fw-la turpissimus_fw-la turpissimus_fw-la in_o stead_n of_o the_o arsenal_n you_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o capitole_n se●●c_fw-la frag_v frag_v 1._o cor._n 13._o 12._o 12._o by_o this_o it_o appear_v you_o intend_v the_o publish_n of_o your_o letter_n at_o the_o write_n of_o it_o it_o m._n doctor_n himself_o in_o the_o 8._o section_n of_o his_o 1._o chapter_n confess_v that_o he_o know_v diverse_a very_o honest_a man_n of_o these_o preacher_n preacher_n have_v make_v they_o before_o the_o seeds-man_n of_o sedition_n and_o author_n of_o all_o error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o corruption_n in_o manner_n it_o be_v then_o good_a time_n of_o day_n to_o tell_v we_o you_o will_v not_o accuse_v they_o they_o sir_n francis_n bacon_n be_v more_o behold_v to_o you_o for_o quote_v his_o essay_n than_o s._n matth_n for_o allege_v his_o gospel_n or_o s._n paul_n for_o his_o epistle_n but_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o be_v too_o noble_a a_o gentleman_n to_o hold_v it_o any_o commendation_n to_o be_v quote_v or_o commend_v by_o such_o as_o yourself_o yourself_o if_o they_o utter_o fail_v in_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o first_o table_n they_o may_v well_o be_v call_v heretic_n rather_o than_o schismatic_n schismatic_n since_o the_o first_o reformation_n above_o a_o generation_n have_v pass_v and_o yet_o by_o your_o own_o acknowledgement_n there_o remain_v diverse_a very_o honest_a man_n even_o among_o those_o who_o you_o labour_v most_o to_o disgrace_n disgrace_n in_o your_o construction_n a_o puritan_n and_o a_o caluinist_n be_v reciprocal_a and_o you_o make_v all_o the_o reform_a netherlander_n the_o helvetian_n the_o french_a and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o english_a to_o be_v caluinist_n so_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o their_o son_n must_v prove_v papist_n or_o atheist_n or_o else_o your_o observation_n fail_v fail_v reformer_n you_o tell_v ●s_a before_o common_o degenerate_a in_o the_o next_o generation_n and_o here_o you_o show_v we_o how_o by_o turn_v papist_n or_o atheist_n as_o if_o papism_n and_o atheism_n be_v so_o near_o of_o kin_n or_o ●o_o resemble_v in_o condition_n that_o the_o one_o may_v easy_o be_v mistake_v for_o the_o other_o or_o th●_n one_o prepare_v away_o to_o the_o other_o other_o 1._o cor._n 14._o 14._o the_o same_o conceit_n have_v charron_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr trois_fw-fr u●r●te_fw-fr lib._n 3._o c._n 12._o 12._o i_o have_v since_o find_v word_n to_o that_o purpose_n in_o his_o meditation●s_fw-la sacrae_fw-la but_o not_o as_o m._n doctor_n quote_v they_o they_o you_o tell_v we_o before_o of_o sure_a rule_n in_o policy_n and_o mutinous_a soldier_n and_o here_o you_o show_v your_o skill_n in_o cowh●rdship_n that_o we_o may_v know_v you_o be_v aliquid_fw-la in_o quolibet_fw-la though_o nihil_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la toto_fw-la notwithstanding_o those_o charm_n your_o romish_a catholik_o can_v be_v keep_v within_o their_o bound_n charm_v the_o charmer_n never_o so_o wise_o wise_o mutato_fw-la nomine_fw-la de_fw-la tuis_fw-la ●abula_fw-la narratur_fw-la narratur_fw-la d._n hall_n in_o his_o roma_fw-la irreconcili●●il●●_n irreconcili●●il●●_n if_o other_o may_v be_v good_a subject_n yourself_o can_v not_o be_v so_o in_o as_o much_z as_o in_o the_o last_o sect._n of_o the_o 1._o cha_n you_o confess_v that_o live_v in_o england_n you_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o breach_n of_o many_o of_o our_o statute_n lib._n 5_o de_fw-fr justi●_n cap._n 7._o 7._o of_o this_o rank_n be_v m._n doctor_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o 19_o sect._n of_o his_o first_o chap._n where_o he_o promise_v to_o justify_v all_o the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o point_n to_o point_n point_n here_o your_o rule_n of_o policy_n fail_v you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o violence_n of_o affection_n be_v rather_o by_o time_n to_o be_v qualify_v then_o withstand_v by_o force_n force_n who_o they_o be_v that_o blow_n the_o coal_n for_o the_o burn_a of_o other_o and_o warm_v of_o themselves_o if_o i_o be_v silent_a the_o stone_n of_o the_o parliament_n house_n will_v speak_v speak_v you_o may_v have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v persuade_v the_o pope_n or_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o have_v hold_v such_o a_o conference_n in_o their_o dominion_n dominion_n how_o simple_o and_o evident_o your_o postiller_n and_o friar_n use_v to_o deliver_v the_o truth_n in_o their_o sermon_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a but_o who_o you_o shall_v mean_v by_o your_o honest_a man_n but_o yourself_o and_o your_o companion_n we_o know_v not_o not_o who_o they_o be_v that_o dazzle_v man_n eye_n and_o rob_v their_o purse_n your_o glorious_a outside_n in_o god_n worship_n and_o your_o infinite_a trick_n to_o get_v money_n sufficient_o testify_v testify_v how_o reconciliable_a the_o difference_n between_o we_o be_v i_o have_v declare_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 18._o sect._n of_o this_o chap._n chap._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la mili_fw-la eccles._n cap._n 5._o 5._o de_fw-fr salute_v indorum_n lib._n 2._o c._n 18._o 18._o lib._n 4._o epist_n 1._o 1._o lib._n 5._o epist_n 30._o see_v lipsius_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr mag._n rom._n rom._n 1._o tim._n 6._o 20._o 20._o psal._n 119._o 105._o 105._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 19_o 19_o luke_n 1._o 79._o 79._o john_n 1._o 9_o 9_o rom._n 1._o 18._o 18._o a_o most_o notorious_a untruth_n if_o by_o caluinism●_n you_o understand_v calvin_n doctrine_n doctrine_n how_o calvin_n doctrine_n overthrow_v all_o these_o or_o any_o of_o these_o let_v his_o book_n testify_v testify_v will_v the_o turk_n believe_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o eternal_a generation_n or_o to_o have_v be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o to_o have_v rise_v from_o the_o grave_n by_o his_o own_o power_n the_o three_o day_n after_o his_o burial_n or_o visible_o to_o have_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n or_o that_o from_o thence_o he_o shall_v return_v again_o to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a
or_o be_v calvin_n charge_v by_o any_o adversary_n to_o overthrow_v any_o of_o these_o so_o much_o as_o by_o consequence_n where_o then_o be_v m._n doctor_n moderation_n moderation_n i_o think_v we_o shall_v expect_v long_o before_o that_o leisure_n be_v offer_v offer_v if_o all_o english_a man_n than_o yourself_o be_v baptize_v in_o that_o doctrine_n in_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o be_v not_o confirm_v as_o you_o ought_v or_o at_o lea●t_o wise_a it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o confirm_v in_o you_o you_o it_o be_v touch_v indeed_o but_o not_o prove_v prove_v that_o just_a treatise_n will_v prove_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o unjust_a calumny_n if_o by_o caluinisme_n you_o understand_v calvin_n doctrine_n doctrine_n my_o table_n of_o comparison_n here_o annex_v to_o my_o answer_n will_v manifest_v many_o plain_a contradiction_n and_o that_o in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o doctrine_n doctrine_n we_o profess_v the_o patience_n of_o dove_n but_o not_o of_o ass_n such_o as_o you_o will_v prove_v we_o to_o be_v if_o you_o make_v we_o in_o that_o to_o believe_v what_o you_o promise_v to_o prove_v prove_v it_o be_v the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o enforce_v we_o to_o be_v at_o war_n with_o she_o she_o whether_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o here_o confess_v but_o deny_v before_o rather_o argue_v the_o corruption_n of_o state_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v then_o be_v argue_v by_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o religion_n whereupon_o they_o stand_v we_o shall_v have_v fit_a opportunity_n to_o examine_v in_o the_o section_n follow_v follow_v my_o lord_n of_o ely_n ely_n the_o word_n of_o the_o bull_n be_v these_o impia_fw-la mysteria_fw-la &_o instituta_fw-la ad_fw-la caluini_fw-la praescriptum_fw-la à_fw-la se_fw-la suscepta_fw-la &_o obseruata_fw-la etiam_fw-la à_fw-la sub_fw-la ditis_fw-la s●ruari_fw-la mandavit_fw-la mandavit_fw-la observe_v their_o ye●rely_a catalogue_n that_o come_v from_o the_o mart_n of_o frankfurt_n frankfurt_n i_o have_v in_o my_o hand_n letter_n write_v from_o beza_n to_o archbishop_n whitgift_n and_o from_o he_o again_o to_o beza_n wherein_o they_o both_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o agree_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o true_a religion_n eliz._n 13._o art_n 35._o 36._o 36._o how_o can_v it_o be_v for_o the_o ea●e_n of_o his_o late_a wife_n and_o their_o child_n since_o the_o breach_n be_v make_v upon_o the_o take_n of_o his_o second_o wife_n or_o ●ather_o his_o first_o if_o his_o marriage_n with_o queen_n k●ther●ne_n be_v a_o nullity_n and_o that_o before_o he_o have_v any_o child_n by_o she_o she_o yet_o hereafter_o you_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o in_o temporal_a respect_n the_o romish_a religion_n be_v the_o fit_a to_o give_v contentment_n to_o the_o several_a member_n of_o the_o state_n state_n that_o untimely_o grow_v together_o will_v rather_o have_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o fester_v and_o rankle_v so_o that_o the_o breach_n be_v keep_v open_a rather_o upon_o judgement_n then_o upon_o affection_n affection_n you_o make_v the_o king_n the_o author_n of_o it_o who_o shall_v have_v exclude_v he_o or_o call_v he_o to_o a_o account_n gregory_z 7_o re●●_n lib._n 7._o ●pist_v 1._o 〈◊〉_d 3._o council_n pa._n 1244_o edit_n b●●ij_fw-la b●●ij_fw-la be_v not_o those_o favourite_n favourer_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n religion_n if_o they_o be_v saint_n why_o do_v you_o still_o pray_v for_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o purgatory_n purgatory_n of_o these_o two_o last_o you_o may_v say_v as_o they_o in_o the_o 19_o of_o the_o act_n who_o make_v silver_n shrine_v for_o their_o great_a goddess_n diana_n by_o this_o craft_n we_o have_v our_o wealth_n wealth_n m._n cambden_n in_o his_o description_n of_o worcestershire_n worcestershire_n by_o the_o common_a law_n of_o england_n it_o be_v evident_a 〈◊〉_d no_o man_n 〈◊〉_d he_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o have_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n can_v have_v inheritance_n of_o tithe_n my_o l_o cook●_n in_o his_o fi●t_z part_n of_o report_n 2d_o ed._n 3._o lib._n ass._n pl._n 75._o 75._o be_v not_o the_o fire_n in_o purgatory_n in_o which_o the_o ●oules_n of_o those_o dead_a be_v suppose_v to_o be_v very_o hot_a the_o fire_n in_o the_o pope_n and_o monk_n kitchen_n will_v quick_o be_v very_o cold_a cold_a your_o pompous_a and_o empty_a show_n in_o god_n service_n well_o deserve_v that_o title_n of_o goodly_a gay_a nothing_o nothing_o satisfaction_n and_o penance_n i_o take_v to_o be_v both_o one_o in_o the_o language_n of_o rome_n though_o you_o seem_v to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o they_o whether_o the_o people_n be_v keep_v in_o obedience_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n let_v the_o manifold_a trouble_n by_o his_o mean_n raise_v testify_v testify_v what_o carnal_a mind_a priest_n or_o monk_n will_v not_o rather_o entertain_v variety_n of_o concubine_n than_o be_v tie_v to_o one_o wife_n sacerdotibus_fw-la magna_fw-la ratione_fw-la sublat●s_fw-la nuptias_fw-la 〈◊〉_d restitu●nd●●_n vider●_n vider●_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 8._o 8._o those_o doctrine_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n and_o maintain_v as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o long_o before_o our_o division_n from_o rome_n may_v well_o cause_v it_o but_o can_v not_o be_v cause_v by_o it_o it_o you_o have_v small_a reason_n to_o make_v he_o a_o enemy_n to_o duke_n save_v only_o for_o not_o betray_v his_o city_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n savoy_n why_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v so_o please_v to_o the_o common_a people_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n but_o only_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n since_o it_o restrain_v they_o of_o much_o liberty_n which_o the_o romish_a afford_v afford_v they_o be_v fall_v out_o with_o their_o duke_n and_o yet_o pretend_v to_o he_o whereas_o in_o truth_n the_o duke_n pretend_v to_o they_o not_o they_o to_o he_o duke_n amadius_fw-la indeed_o get_v that_o donation_n from_o pope_n martin_n but_o neither_o himself_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n can_v ever_o enjoy_v the_o possession_n and_o as_o i_o hear_v philibertus_n their_o present_a duke_n public_o renounce_v his_o pretence_n unto_o it_o in_o the_o last_o assembly_n of_o the_o protestant_n of_o france_n at_o grenoble_n grenoble_n better_o a_o young_a reformer_n than_o a_o old_a apostate_n apostate_n he_o find_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n though_o not_o the_o form_n or_o method_n method_n your_o faith_n of_o rome_n come_v not_o so_o far_o as_o a_o strong_a imagination_n it_o content_v itself_o with_o a_o bare_a speculation_n or_o naked_a apprehension_n some_o reprobate_n go_v as_o far_o in_o believe_v and_o all_o devil_n far_o far_o b●zaes_n word_n be_v eiurato_fw-la pal●m_fw-la papatu_fw-la by_o which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o renounce_n of_o the_o papacy_n or_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o the_o swear_n of_o all_o popery_n to_o be_v false_a or_o the_o abi●●ing_n of_o a_o man_n hope_n of_o attain_v the_o popedom_n as_o a_o relapsed_a ●riar_n late_o expound_v himself_o himself_o that_o which_o be_v affect_v by_o god_n special_a providence_n in_o their_o often_o and_o miraculous_a deliverance_n you_o malicious_o ascribe_v to_o fortune_n and_o the_o help_n of_o their_o neighbour_n how_o can_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o duke_n be_v both_o their_o ancient_a governor_n method_n hist._n cap._n 6._o 6._o tom._n 2._o par●_n 1._o 1._o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d part_n of_o his_o sermon_n against_o calvin_n preach_v at_o thurin_n 〈◊〉_d 1582._o 1582._o th●u_o which_o teach_v another_o man_n shall_v not_o steal_v do_v thou_o steal_v steal_v so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v true_o say_v of_o they_o as_o the_o o_o rator_n do_v of_o some_o of_o his_o time_n provenie●ant_fw-la ad_fw-la rompub_fw-la novi_fw-la orator●●_n adolescentuli_fw-la adolescentuli_fw-la see_v no_o man_n despise_v thy_o youth_n tit._n tit._n i_o non_fw-la esse_fw-la pecuniosum_fw-la si_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la viws_fw-la non_fw-la persuadeo_fw-la mors_fw-la tamen_fw-la ostendet_fw-la ostendet_fw-la m._n hooker_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n discipline_n b●zaes_n word_n be_v pl●risque_fw-la ex_fw-la collegie_n timiditate_fw-la turbas_fw-la fugi●ntibus_fw-la fugi●ntibus_fw-la jerem._n 6._o 16._o 16._o you_o have_v make_v your_o observation_n good_a by_o your_o own_o affect_v of_o novelty_n in_o the_o change_n of_o your_o religion_n religion_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v more_o liberty_n in_o that_o profession_n where_o indu●gences_n be_v so_o rise_v and_o dispensation_n so_o easy_a easy_a if_o by_o the_o old_a clergy_n you_o mean_v the_o ancient_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n it_o remain_v at_o this_o day_n unalter_a unalter_a the_o admire_v of_o all_o that_o come_v from_o beyond_o sea_n may_v better_o be_v apply_v to_o your_o roman_a catholic_n then_o any_o other_o to_o who_o omn●_fw-la longinquum_fw-la pro_fw-la magnifico_n est_fw-la as_o also_o their_o com●orting_v one_o another_o with_o report_n report_n but_o by_o the_o papist_n it_o be_v condemn_v as_o heresy_n heresy_n i_o can_v possible_o conceive_v
afford_v as_o many_o sufficient_a and_o learned_a preacher_n and_o that_o in_o a_o more_o substantial_a and_o conscionable_a fashion_n than_o the_o pope_n hierarchy_n and_o that_o london_n alone_o afford_v more_o than_o rome_n itself_o and_o their_o readiness_n to_o supply_v sermon_n be_v not_o so_o much_o out_o of_o any_o good_a will_v they_o bear_v that_o exercise_n as_o out_o of_o ill_n will_v they_o bear_v us._n john_n advent_v lib._n 30._o anal._n boio_fw-la boio_fw-la so_o that_o in_o mr._n doctor_n logic_n a_o honest_a protestant_n may_v thus_o be_v define_v one_o that_o can_v endure_v the_o state_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v and_o can_v be_v content_a it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v receive_v more_o benefit_n benefit_n you_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o all_o false_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v but_o humane_a policy_n and_o we_o as_o true_o return_v it_o upon_o you_o that_o this_o humane_a policy_n favour_v of_o a_o false_a religion_n religion_n many_o of_o they_o though_o they_o profess_v themselves_o dead_a to_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v they_o alive_a to_o the_o flesh_n renulfus_fw-la c●str_n lib._n 7._o 7._o indeed_o by_o the_o form_n of_o word_n yet_o extant_a in_o the_o mass_n book_n and_o use_v by_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o a_o number_n shall_v communicate_v daily_o with_o he_o but_o it_o seldom_o be_v so_o so_o if_o we_o have_v no_o use_n of_o confessor_n yet_o might_n and_o ought_v inferior_n be_v keep_v in_o awe_n of_o hell_n fire_n by_o their_o preacher_n and_o superior_n be_v tell_v of_o their_o error_n in_o state_n by_o their_o counsellor_n but_o you_o seem_v to_o assure_v his_o majesty_n that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v tell_v of_o his_o error_n in_o confession_n he_o shall_v in_o rebellion_n rebellion_n 2._o cor._n 5._o 18._o 18._o bell_n the_o pe●●t_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la front_n pag._n 129._o 129._o premon_n 125_o 125_o see_v novel_a doct_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o premon_n the_o 3._o 3._o epist._n ad_fw-la front_n p●g_n 140._o 140._o pag._n 326._o 326._o that_o be_v they_o do_v not_o bind_v he_o to_o present_v the_o party_n confess_v as_o appear_v both_o in_o the_o body_n and_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n canon_n gal._n 5._o 1._o 1._o if_o in_o those_o middle_a time_n when_o all_o thing_n run_v in_o a_o current_a course_n there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o statute_n make_v in_o church_n matter_n it_o must_v be_v impute_v rather_o to_o the_o want_n of_o occasion_n then_o of_o power_n the_o plantation_n or_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n chief_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o make_n of_o law_n in_o church_n matter_n matter_n when_o the_o name_n of_o a_o parliament_n begin_v in_o england_n be_v uncertain_a see_v my_o l._n coke_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o nine_o part_n of_o his_o report_n report_n i_o take_v the_o raise_n of_o new_a house_n to_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o the_o commonwealth_a the_o lawyer_n themselves_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o commons_o commons_o as_o 〈◊〉_d the_o civil_a law_n come_v not_o from_o the_o roman_a infidel_n ●hich_v notwithstanding_o stand_v well_o enough_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n court_n what_o you_o call_v catholic_a i_o know_v not_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o since_o king_n eth._n time_n many_o statute_n have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o restrain_v of_o the_o b●shop_n of_o rome_n unjust_a usurpation_n neither_o do●_n find_v that_o he_o ●●●tered_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n save_v only_o by_o command_v they_o to_o be_v turn_v into_o his_o mother_n tongue_n tongue_n i●_n by_o better_a time_n you_o mean_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n or_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o our_o church_n to_o rome_n you_o have_v certain_o very_o little_a reason_n to_o expect_v they_o from_o the_o learning_n wisdom_n and_o moderation_n of_o those_o that_o be_v now_o the_o chief_a in_o that_o profession_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o have_v both_o frequent_o and_o ful_o declare_v himself_o to_o the_o contrary_a and_o suffer_v for_o it_o by_o the_o slanderous_a tongue_n and_o pen_n of_o malicious_a romanist_n and_o namely_o eudaemon_n and_o parson_n parson_n bod_fw-mi in_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la ●epub_fw-la cap._n 8._o 8._o see_v mons●ir_n servius_n the_o king_n attorney_n general_n speech_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n paris_n sp●culum_fw-la iust._n anno_fw-la 712._o 712._o statut._n 21._o r●●_n 2._o cap._n 11._o 11._o comment_fw-fr cap._n 49._o 49._o a_o god_n contain_v the_o sea_n within_o his_o own_o bound_n and_o march_n so_o be_v it_o my_o office_n to_o make_v every_o court_n contain_v itself_o within_o its_o own_o limit_n see_v his_o majesty_n speech_n in_o parliament_n 1609._o 1609._o cap._n 17._o 17._o what_o tho●●_n clergy_n man_n be_v we_o desire_v to_o know_v and_o who_o in_o your_o sense_n be_v caluinist_n caluinist_n what_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o section_n section_n that_o his_o majesty_n favour_n to_o the_o clergy_n be_v such_o as_o not_o to_o give_v way_n to_o their_o overthrow_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o they_o to_o set_v up_o a_o few_o stipendiary_a preacher_n we_o have_v have_v good_a trial_n and_o be_v bind_v to_o bless_v god_n for_o it_o but_o sore_o against_o the_o will_n of_o all_o roman_a catholic_n it_o be_v that_o his_o majesty_n shall_v favour_v they_o so_o much_o much_o how_o calvin_n himself_o though_o he_o be_v a_o stipendiary_a minister_n please_v master_n maior_n and_o his_o brethren_n let_v his_o banishment_n more_o than_o once_o for_o his_o free_a preach_n testify_v testify_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o both_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o heir_n apparent_a be_v so_o well_o resolve_v in_o this_o point_n as_o they_o will_v never_o put_v it_o to_o the_o question_n question_n our_o sermon_n be_v not_o so_o cheap_a as_o your_o mass_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o very_a life_n and_o soul_n of_o your_o priesthood_n priesthood_n the_o untruth_n of_o this_o assertion_n appear_v in_o my_o answer_n answer_n as_o if_o all_o those_o who_o be_v call_v lord_n and_o go_v in_o rochets_fw-mi be_v not_o by_o their_o place_n conformable_a to_o the_o discipline_n &_o have_v often_o before_o they_o come_v to_o that_o place_n subscribe_v to_o the_o doctrine_n establish_v by_o law_n law_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o turn_n lay_v with_o you_o where_o lay_v man_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n these_o kind_n of_o clergy_n man_n desire_v no_o satisfaction_n from_o you_o but_o wish_v you_o have_v be_v as_o careful_a to_o maintain_v that_o truth_n which_o once_o you_o profess_v as_o to_o confute_v their_o pretend_a error_n which_o confutation_n notwithstanding_o you_o speak_v much_o of_o but_o no_o where_o perform_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o undertake_v undertake_v you_o may_v rather_o call_v they_o temporize_v then_o temperate_a temperate_a it_o be_v well_o that_o other_o know_v they_o too_o if_o any_o such_o there_o be_v who_o in_o judgement_n approve_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o you_o call_v cath._n and_o yet_o promise_v themselves_o not_o only_a member_n but_o minister_n of_o our_o church_n but_o our_o hope_n be_v that_o their_o number_n be_v not_o such_o as_o you_o vaunt_v of_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o honest_a man_n and_o good_a scholar_n shall_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o subscribe_v to_o our_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o in_o judgement_n approve_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o substance_n of_o that_o religion_n religion_n have_v we_o have_v the_o like_a temperate_a course_n hold_v with_o they_o or_o the_o like_a liberty_n afford_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n they_o will_v have_v think_v themselves_o happy_a happy_a their_o wife_n and_o child_n be_v bind_v to_o pray_v for_o you_o in_o regard_n of_o your_o fatherly_a care_n of_o they_o they_o it_o be_v well_o that_o you_o account_v yourself_o one_o of_o the_o honest_a man_n and_o good_a scholar_n but_o they_o be_v so_o far_o i_o hope_v from_o account_v you_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o utter_o condemn_v and_o mislike_v your_o course_n course_n but_o it_o please_v god_n you_o shall_v die_v among_o stranger_n and_o not_o live_v to_o see_v that_o toleration_n you_o desire_v neither_o shall_v any_o of_o they_o we_o hope_v that_o yet_o live_v and_o desire_v to_o see_v it_o it_o as_o if_o the_o whole_a fortune_n of_o greece_n depend_v upon_o your_o submission_n to_o that_o church_n church_n what_o assurance_n can_v there_o be_v on_o our_o part_n from_o they_o who_o hold_v y●_z faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v with_o heretic_n but_o you_o forget_v your_o promise_n make_v to_o my_o lord_n grace_n of_o